Suffering and the Sovereignty of God

Sermon  •  Submitted
0 ratings
· 1,472 views
Notes
Transcript

The experience of human suffering has perplexed minds ever since the

fall. For Christians, the question of suffering rises to a new level of

importance because of our belief in the sovereignty of our loving and

merciful God. In Suffering and the Sovereignty of God, John Piper and

friends tackle some of the hardest and most significant issues of Christian

concern, producing one of the most honest, faithful, and helpful volumes

ever made available to thinking Christians. It is filled with pastoral wisdom,

theological conviction, biblical insight, and spiritual counsel. This

book answers one of the greatest needs of our times—to affirm the

sovereignty of God and to ponder the meaning of human suffering. We

need this book.

—R. ALBERT MOHLER, JR.

President, The Southern Baptist Theological Seminary

Louisville, Kentucky

For all who don’t live a charmed life, for all who have given themselves

to the point of exhaustion, for all who have been betrayed by pious backstabbers,

for all who wonder if they can even go on, Suffering and the

Sovereignty of God will be green pastures and deep, still waters. The wisdom

of this book stands forth like a kind friend, pointing us to the

Crucified and Triumphant One, who says, “Come to me, all who labor

and are heavy laden, and I will give you rest.”

—RAYMOND C. ORTLUND, JR.

Senior Pastor, Christ Presbyterian Church

Nashville, Tennessee

With courage and honesty, this book squarely faces some of the toughest

challenges for Christians. The writers combine utter faithfulness to

Scripture with unassuming authenticity. They write as people whose

minds have been shaped by God’s Word and whose lives have been

formed in the crucible of suffering. This book will challenge you to

believe that God is truly sovereign, not just in the safe haven of theological

inquiry, but also in the painful messiness of real life. You will be

encouraged to live more consistently by God’s grace and for his glory.

—MARK D. ROBERTS

Senior Pastor, Irvine Presbyterian Church

Irvine, California

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 1

Most Christians readily rationalize away God’s role in personal and

human suffering. In an effort to protect God’s moral nature and his being

the source of only that which is good, an understanding of his

sovereignty is diminished as well as the glory he derives when we recognize

his victory over all that is evil. John Piper and Justin Taylor have

collaborated with a number of other writers to communicate a refreshing

perspective on Suffering and the Sovereignty of God. This is not

another theological volume that complicates what appears to be an irreconcilable

paradox; it is a book that grows out of practical experience and

applies Scripture to a realistic world where we all live.

—JERRY RANKIN

President, Southern Baptist International Mission Board

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 2

Suffering and the

Sovereignty of God

John Piper | Justin Taylor

E DI TOR S

CROSSWAY BOOK S

A P U B L I S H I N G M I N I S T R Y O F

G O O D N E W S P U B L I S H E R S

W H E A T O N , I L L I N O I S

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 3

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God

Copyright © 2006 by Desiring God

Published by Crossway Books

a publishing ministry of Good News Publishers

1300 Crescent Street

Wheaton, Illinois 60187

All rights reserved. No part of this publication may be reproduced, stored in a

retrieval system, or transmitted in any form by any means, electronic, mechanical,

photocopy, recording, or otherwise, without the prior permission of the publisher,

except as provided by USA copyright law.

Cover design: Jon McGrath

Cover photo: photos.com

First printing 2006

Printed in the United States of America

Unless otherwise indicated, Scripture quotations are from The Holy Bible, English

Standard Version®, copyright © 2001 by Crossway Bibles, a publishing ministry of

Good News Publishers. Used by permission. All rights reserved.

Scripture quotations marked AT are the author’s translation or paraphrase.

Scripture quotations marked NASB are from The New American Standard Bible.®

Copyright © The Lockman Foundation 1960, 1962, 1963, 1968, 1971, 1972, 1973,

1975, 1977, 1995. Used by permission.

Scripture references marked NIV are from The Holy Bible: New International

Version.® Copyright © 1973, 1978, 1984 by International Bible Society. Used by

permission of Zondervan Publishing House. All rights reserved.

The “NIV” and “New International Version” trademarks are registered in the United

States Patent and Trademark Office by International Bible Society. Use of either

trademark requires the permission of International Bible Society.

Scripture references marked NLT are from The Holy Bible, New Living Translation,

copyright © 1996. Used by permission of Tyndale House Publishers, Inc., Wheaton,

Ill., 60189. All rights reserved.

Scripture references marked RSV are from The Revised Standard Version. Copyright ©

1946, 1952, 1971, 1973 by the Division of Christian Education of the National

Council of the Churches of Christ in the U.S.A.

All emphases in Scripture quotations have been added by the authors.

Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God / edited by John Piper and

Justin Taylor.

p. cm.

Includes index.

ISBN 13: 978-1-58134-809-5 (tpb)

ISBN 10: 1-58134-809-6 (tpb)

1. Suffering—religious aspects—Christianity. 2. Providence and

government of God. 3.God—omnipotence. 4. Theodicy. I. Piper, John,

1946– . II. Taylor, Justin, 1976– .

BT732.7.S835 2006

231'.8—dc22 2006018431

ML 15 14 13 12 11 10 09 08 07 06

14 13 12 11 10 9 8 7 6 5 4 3 2 1

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 4

To

The white-robed army of martyrs

“. . . until the number of their fellow servants and

their brothers should be complete.”

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 5

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 6

Contents

Contributors 9

Introduction 11

Justin Taylor

Part 1: The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

1 Suffering and the Sovereignty of God: Ten Aspects of God’s 17

Sovereignty Over Suffering and Satan’s Hand in It

John Piper

2 “All the Good That Is Ours in Christ”: Seeing God’s Gracious 31

Hand in the Hurts Others Do to Us

Mark R. Talbot

Part 2: The Purposes of God in Suffering

3 The Suffering of Christ and the Sovereignty of God 81

John Piper

4 Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 91

John Piper

5 Sovereignty, Suffering, and the Work of Missions 111

Stephen F. Saint

6 The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 123

Carl F. Ellis, Jr.

Part 3: The Grace of God in Suffering

7 God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 145

David Powlison

8 Waiting for the Morning during the Long Night of Weeping 175

Dustin Shramek

9 Hope . . . the Best of Things 191

Joni Eareckson Tada

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 7

Appendices

Don’t Waste Your Cancer 207

John Piper and David Powlison

An Interview with John Piper 219

John Piper and Justin Taylor

Subject Index 242

Person Index 245

Scripture Index 247

Desiring God: Note on Resources 255

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 8

Contributors

Carl F. Ellis, Jr. President, Project Joseph, Chattanooga, Tennessee

John Piper. Pastor for preaching and vision, Bethlehem Baptist Church,

Minneapolis, Minnesota

David Powlison. Counselor and teacher, Christian Counseling and

Education Foundation, Glenside, Pennsylvania

Stephen F. Saint. Founder, I-TEC (Indigenous People’s Technology and

Education Center), Dunnellon, Florida

Dustin Shramek. Cross cultural peacemaker, the Middle East and

Minnesota

Joni Eareckson Tada. Founder and chief executive officer, Joni and

Friends, Agoura Hills, California

Mark R. Talbot. Associate professor of philosophy, Wheaton College,

Wheaton, Illinois

Justin Taylor. ESV Bible project manager and associate publisher,

Crossway Books, Wheaton, Illinois

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 9

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 10

Introduction

Justin Taylor

Most of the chapters in this book originated as talks given at the 2005

Desiring God National Conference on “Suffering and the

Sovereignty of God.” The contributors have graciously agreed to convert

their oral presentations into written chapters in order to serve a

wider audience.

All of the authors of this volume have addressed, in one way or

another, the issue of how God’s sovereignty relates to human suffering.

But they have done so by addressing different questions such as: In what

ways is God sovereign over Satan’s work? How can we be free and

responsible if God ordains our choices? What is the ultimate reason that

suffering exists? How does suffering help to advance the mission of the

church? How should we understand the origin of ethnic-based clashes

and suffering? How does God’s grace enter our sufferings? Why is it

good for us to meditate upon the depth and pain of severe suffering?

What is the role of hope when things look utterly hopeless?

Though some very deep and difficult truths are imbedded within

these pages, this is not an academic book. The authors do not write as

mere theoreticians, waxing eloquent about abstract themes. No, this is

a book of applied theology. Its theology has been forged in the furnace

of affliction. Two of the contributors are paralyzed and deal with

chronic pain. Two experienced the death of a parent when they were

young. Two had children who died in the past few years. Two are currently

battling prostate cancer. The point of mentioning this is not to

portray them as victims or to elicit your sympathy, but rather to reiterate

that they are fellow soldiers in the battle, fellow pilgrims on the journey.

Think of them as friends who are taking the time to write to you

about what God has taught them concerning his mysterious sovereignty

in the midst of pain and suffering.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 11

An Overview of the Book

Part 1 focuses most specifically on the sovereignty of God in and over

suffering. In chapter 1 John Piper celebrates the biblical truth that God

is sovereign over Satan’s work—including Satan’s delegated world rule,

angels, hand in persecution, life-taking power, hand in natural disasters,

sickness-causing power, use of animals and plants, temptations to sin,

mind-blinding power, and spiritual bondage. In chapter 2 Mark Talbot

takes up the issue of how God’s will relates to our wills when we hurt

each other and ourselves. If God is sovereign, why doesn’t God stop such

things? Talbot argues that while God never does evil, he does indeed

ordain evil. He then deals with the question of how we can be free and

held responsible for our choices.

Given that God is sovereign over all suffering, Part 2 asks why he

allows pain. In chapter 3 John Piper argues that the ultimate biblical

explanation for the existence of suffering is so that “Christ might display

the greatness of the glory of the grace of God by suffering in himself

to overcome our suffering.” In chapter 4 Piper suggests six ways that

the mission of the church is advanced through suffering: our faith and

holiness are deepened, our cup increases, others are made bold, Christ’s

afflictions are filled up, the missionary command to “go” is enforced,

and the supremacy of Christ is manifested.

Steve Saint is often identified with suffering, but he points out in

chapter 5 that suffering is relative. While we in the West expend vast

resources to avoid suffering, we fail to realize that suffering people want

to be ministered to by those who have themselves suffered. Saint

recounts two deeply painful chapters of his life: the death of his father

and the death of his daughter. He believes that God planned both deaths,

and that through this suffering God has worked—and is working—

untold blessings and is advancing the fulfillment of the Great

Commission.

In chapter 6 Carl Ellis helps us to think through ethnic-based suffering

under the sovereignty of God. He argues that the body of Christ

needs to be a prophetic voice in our culture, developing a more radical

understanding of ethnic-based suffering and modeling the true meaning

of ethnicity unto the glory of God. In working toward this end, he covers

the origin of suffering; the mystery of suffering; the basis of suffer-

12 Introduction

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 12

ing; God’s awareness of suffering; our response to suffering; and the people

of God and suffering.

The final major section of this book, Part 3, looks at the grace of

God in our suffering. In chapter 7 David Powlison discusses not the general

topic of God and suffering, but rather how God’s grace meets you

in your sufferings. He suggests thinking of his chapter as a workshop,

encouraging you to jot notes and write in the margin, working out the

principles. Powlison then walks us through each stanza of the great

hymn “How Firm a Foundation,” teaching us to listen to God’s grace

speaking to us through its words.

“Weeping may tarry for the night, but joy comes with the morning”

(Ps. 30:5). That’s the verse behind chapter 8, written by Dustin Shramek.

We can wait for joy that comes in the morning because of faith in our good

and sovereign God. But we must not forget that the night is often long and

dark, and the weeping is often uncontrollable. Through an examination

of Psalm 88—the one psalm that ends without a note of hope—Shramek

argues that the Bible presupposes the post-fall normality of deep pain.

Minimizing the pain of suffering is a failure to love others and a failure to

honor God. Only after we sense the severity of suffering can we truly

understand why Paul contrasts “slight momentary affliction” with the

“weight of glory beyond all comparison” (2 Cor. 4:17).

Chapter 9, by Joni Eareckson Tada, centers around the themes of

meeting suffering and joy on God’s terms—not ours. She recalls a

famous line from The Shawshank Redemption where Andy Dufresne

says: “Hope is a good thing, maybe the best of things. And no good

thing ever dies.” But she acknowledges that hope is often hard to come

by, recounting the suffering of her friends and her own pain as a

quadriplegic. Though Joni longs for the new heavens and the new earth

when she will be able to stand on her resurrected legs next to King Jesus,

she also plans to thank him for “the bruising of the blessing of that

wheelchair,” for without it she would have missed untold blessings in

her life—even amidst the pain. She ends with a hope-filled, stirring vision

of that Day when we will experience Trinitarian fellowship in all its

glory.

At the end of this book we have included two appendices. The first,

entitled “Don’t Waste Your Cancer,” began as a meditation by John

Piper on the eve of his prostate surgery. A few weeks later, David

Introduction 13

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 13

Powlison learned that he too had prostate cancer, and he added his own

reflections the morning after his diagnosis. Finally, we have included an

interview that I conducted with John Piper at the “Suffering and the

Sovereignty of God” conference, where I was able to ask him some questions

about his own theological journey as well as some of the more difficult

issues surrounding the pain of suffering.

Our Prayer

Our prayer is not that this book would make the bestseller list or receive

acclaim and praise. Rather, our prayer is that God would direct the right

readers—in accordance with his sovereign purposes—to its pages, and

that he would change all of us so that we might experience more grace

and hope. Perhaps your suffering has been so severe and relentless that

you are on the verge of losing all hope. Or at the other end of the spectrum,

perhaps you have a slightly guilty feeling because, though you see

suffering all around, you have experienced very little suffering directly.

Perhaps you are working through some of the deep theological questions

surrounding this issue. Or perhaps you simply need to read that others

have suffered too—and survived with their faith intact.

While the contributors to this book are all united in their theology

of God’s sovereignty over suffering, they each approach the topic from

a different angle. To use an analogy, there is one diamond, but it can be

viewed from multiple perspectives. You don’t need to read this book

cover to cover. We encourage you to start with a section that addresses

your most pressing questions.

Whatever your situation, we pray that God would use this book to

show you a little more of himself and help you to understand more

about his sovereignty over and in our suffering.

14 Introduction

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 14

Part 1:

The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 15

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 16

The impetus for this book comes from the ultimate reality of God as

the supreme value in and above the universe. God is absolute and

eternal and infinite. Everything else and everybody else is dependent and

finite and contingent. God himself is the great supreme value. Everything

else that has any value has it by connection to God. God is supreme in

all things. He has all authority, all power, all wisdom—and he is all good

“to those who wait for him, to the soul who seeks him” (Lam. 3:25).

And his name, as Creator and Redeemer and Ruler of all, is Jesus Christ.

In the last few years, 9/11, tsunamis, Katrina, and ten thousand personal

losses have helped us discover how little the American church is

rooted in this truth. David Wells, in his new book, Above All Earthly

Pow’rs: Christ in a Postmodern World, says it like this:

This moment of tragedy and evil [referring to 9/11] shone its own light

on the Church and what we came to see was not a happy sight. For

what has become conspicuous by its scarcity, and not least in the evangelical

corner of it, is a spiritual gravitas, one which could match the

depth of horrendous evil and address issues of such seriousness.

Evangelicalism, now much absorbed by the arts and tricks of marketing,

is simply not very serious anymore.1

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God:

Ten Aspects of God’s Sovereignty Over

Suffering and Satan’s Hand in It

chapter 1

John Piper

1 David Wells, Above All Earthly Pow’rs: Christ in a Postmodern World (Grand Rapids, Mich.:

Eerdmans, 2005), 4.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 17

In other words, our vision of God in relation to evil and suffering was

shown to be frivolous. The church has not been spending its energy to

go deep with the unfathomable God of the Bible. Against the overwhelming

weight and seriousness of the Bible, much of the church is

choosing, at this very moment, to become more light and shallow and

entertainment-oriented, and therefore successful in its irrelevance to

massive suffering and evil. The popular God of fun-church is simply too

small and too affable to hold a hurricane in his hand. The biblical categories

of God’s sovereignty lie like land mines in the pages of the Bible

waiting for someone to seriously open the book. They don’t kill, but they

do explode trivial notions of the Almighty.

So my prayer for this book is that God would stand forth and

reassert his Creator-rights in our lives, and show us his crucified and

risen Son who has all authority in heaven and on earth, and waken in

us the strongest faith in the supremacy of Christ, and the deepest comforts

in suffering, and the sweetest fellowship with Jesus that we have

ever known.

The contributors to this volume have all suffered, some more visibly

than others. You don’t need to know the details. Suffice it to say that

none of them is dealing with a theoretical issue in this book. They live

in the world of pain and loss where you live. They are aware that some

people reading this book are dying. There are people who love those

who are dying; people who live with chronic pain; people who have just

lost one of the most precious persons in their life; people who do not

believe in the goodness of God—or in God at all—who count this book

their one last effort to see if the gospel is real. People who are about to

enter a time of suffering in their life for which they are totally unprepared.

These authors are not naïve about life or about who you are. We

are glad you are reading this book—all of you. And we pray that you

will never be the same again.

The approach I am going to take in this chapter is not to solve any

problem directly, but to celebrate the sovereignty of God over Satan and

his sovereignty over all the evils that Satan has a hand in. My conviction

is that letting God speak his word will awaken worship—like Job’s—and

worship will shape our hearts to understand whatever measure of God’s

mystery he wills for us to know. What follows is a celebration of “Ten

18 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 18

Aspects of God’s Sovereignty Over Suffering and Satan’s Hand in It.”

And what I mean in this chapter when I say that God is sovereign is not

merely that God has the power and right to govern all things, but that he

does govern all things, for his own wise and holy purposes.

1. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s

Delegated World Rule

Satan is sometimes called in the Bible “the ruler of this world” (John

12:31; 14:30; 16:11), or “the god of this world” (2 Cor. 4:4), or “the

prince of the power of the air” (Eph. 2:2), or a “cosmic power over this

present darkness” (Eph. 6:12). This means that we should probably take

him seriously when we read in Luke 4:5-7 that “the devil took [Jesus]

up and showed him all the kingdoms of the world in a moment of time,

and said to him, ‘To you I will give all this authority and their glory, for

it has been delivered to me, and I give it to whom I will. If you, then,

will worship me, it will all be yours.’”

And of course that is strictly true: if the sovereign of the universe

bows in worshipful submission to anyone, that one becomes the

sovereign of the universe. But Satan’s claim that he can give the authority

and glory of world kingdoms to whomever he wills is a half truth.

No doubt he does play havoc in the world by maneuvering a Stalin or

a Hitler or an Idi Amin or a Bloody Mary or a Saddam Hussein into

murderous power. But he does this only at God’s permission and within

God’s appointed limits.

This is made clear over and over again in the Bible. For example,

Daniel 2:20-21: “Daniel answered and said: ‘Blessed be the name of God

forever and ever, to whom belong wisdom and might. He changes times

and seasons; he removes kings and sets up kings’”; and Daniel 4:17:

“The Most High rules the kingdom of men and gives it to whom he

will.” When the kings are in their God-appointed place, with or without

Satan’s agency, they are in the sway of God’s sovereign will, as

Proverbs 21:1 says: “The king’s heart is a stream of water in the hand

of the LORD; he turns it wherever he will.”

Evil nations rise and set themselves against the Almighty. “The kings

of the earth set themselves, and the rulers take counsel together, against

the LORD and against his anointed, saying, ‘Let us burst their bonds

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God 19

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 19

apart and cast away their cords from us.’ He who sits in the heavens

laughs; the Lord holds them in derision” (Ps. 2:2-4). Do they think that

their sin and evil and rebellion against him can thwart the counsel of the

Lord? Psalm 33:10-11 answers, “The LORD brings the counsel of the

nations to nothing; he frustrates the plans of the peoples. The counsel

of the LORD stands forever, the plans of his heart to all generations.”

God is sovereign over the nations and over all their rulers and all

the satanic power behind them. They do not move without his permission,

and they do not move outside his sovereign plan.

2. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s Angels

(Demons, Evil Spirits)

Satan has thousands of cohorts in supernatural evil. They are called

“demons” (Matt. 8:31; James 2:19), or “evil spirits” (Luke 7:21), or

“unclean spirits” (Matt. 10:1), or “the devil and his angels” (Matt.

25:41). We get a tiny glimpse into demonic warfare in Daniel 10 where

the angel who is sent in response to Daniel’s prayer says, “The prince of

the kingdom of Persia withstood me twenty-one days, but Michael, one

of the chief princes, came to help me” (Dan. 10:13). So apparently the

demon, or evil spirit, over Persia fought against the angel sent to help

Daniel, and a greater angel, Michael, came to his aid.

But the Bible leaves us with no doubt as to who is in charge in all

these skirmishes. Martin Luther got it right:

And though this world, with devils filled,

Should threaten to undo us,

We will not fear, for God hath willed

His truth to triumph through us.

The prince of darkness grim,

We tremble not for him;

His rage we can endure,

For lo! his doom is sure;

One little word will fell him.2

We see glimpses of those little words at work, for example, when

Jesus comes up against thousands of demons in Matthew 8:29-32. They

20 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

2 Martin Luther, “A Mighty Fortress Is Our God” (1529).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 20

were possessing a man and making him insane. The demons cry out,

“What have you to do with us, O Son of God? Have you come here to

torment us before the time?” (They know a time is set for their final

destruction.) And Jesus spoke to them one little word: “Go,” and they

came out of the man. There is no question who is sovereign in this battle.

The people had seen this before and were amazed and said, “He

commands even the unclean spirits, and they obey him” (Mark 1:27).

They obey him. As for Satan: “We tremble not for him; his rage we can

endure.” But as for Christ: even though they slay him, they always must

obey him! God is sovereign over Satan’s angels.

3. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s Hand in

Persecution

The apostle Peter describes the suffering of Christians like this: “Your

adversary the devil prowls around like a roaring lion, seeking someone

to devour. Resist him, firm in your faith, knowing that the same kinds

of suffering are being experienced by your brotherhood throughout the

world” (1 Pet. 5:8-9). So the sufferings of persecution are like the jaws

of a satanic lion trying to consume and destroy the faith of believers in

Christ.

But do these Christians suffer in Satan’s jaws of persecution apart

from the sovereign will of God? When Satan crushes Christians in the

jaws of their own private Calvary, does God not govern those jaws

for the good of his precious child? Listen to Peter’s answer in 1 Peter

3:17: “It is better to suffer for doing good, if that should be God’s

will, than for doing evil.” In other words, if God wills that we suffer

for doing good, we will suffer. And if he does not will that we suffer

for doing good, we will not. The lion does not have the last say. God

does.

The night Jesus was arrested, satanic power was in full force (Luke

22:3, 31). And Jesus spoke into that situation one of his most sovereign

words. He said to those who came to arrest him in the dark: “Have you

come out as against a robber, with swords and clubs? When I was with

you day after day in the temple, you did not lay hands on me. But this

is your hour, and the power of darkness” (Luke 22:52-53). The jaws of

the lion close on me tonight no sooner and no later than my Father

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God 21

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 21

planned. “No one takes [my life] from me, but I lay it down of my own

accord” (John 10:18). Boast not yourself over the hand that made you,

Satan. You have one hour. What you do, do quickly. God is sovereign

over Satan’s hand in persecution.

4. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s

Life-Taking Power

The Bible does not take lightly or minimize the power of Satan to kill

people, including Christians. Jesus said in John 8:44, “You are of your

father the devil, and your will is to do your father’s desires. He was a

murderer from the beginning.” John tells us, in fact, that he does indeed

take the lives of faithful Christians. Revelation 2:10, “Do not fear what

you are about to suffer. Behold, the devil is about to throw some of you

into prison, that you may be tested, and for ten days you will have

tribulation. Be faithful unto death, and I will give you the crown of

life.”

Is God then not the Lord of life and death? He is. None lives and

none dies but by God’s sovereign decree. “See now that I, even I, am he,

and there is no god beside me; I kill and I make alive; I wound and I heal;

and there is none that can deliver out of my hand” (Deut. 32:39). There

is no god, no demon, no Satan that can snatch to death any person that

God wills to live (see 1 Sam. 2:6).

James, the brother of Jesus, says this in a stunning way in James

4:13-16:

Come now, you who say, “Today or tomorrow we will go into such

and such a town and spend a year there and trade and make a

profit”—yet you do not know what tomorrow will bring. What is

your life? For you are a mist that appears for a little time and then vanishes.

Instead you ought to say, “If the Lord wills, we will live and do

this or that.” As it is, you boast in your arrogance. All such boasting

is evil.

If the Lord wills, we will live. And if he doesn’t, we will die. God, not

Satan, makes the final call. Our lives are ultimately in his hands, not

Satan’s. God is sovereign over Satan’s life-taking power.

22 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 22

5. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s Hand

in Natural Disasters

Hurricanes, tsunamis, tornadoes, earthquakes, blistering heat, deadly

cold, drought, flood, famine. When Satan approached God in the first

chapter of Job, he challenged God, “Stretch out your hand and touch

all that he has, and he will curse you to your face” (v. 11).Then the Lord

said to Satan, “Behold, all that he has is in your hand. Only against him

do not stretch out your hand” (v. 12).

The result was two human atrocities and two natural disasters. One

of the disasters is reported to Job in verse 16: “The fire of God fell from

heaven [probably lightning] and burned up the sheep and the servants

and consumed them, and I alone have escaped to tell you.” And then

the worst report of all in verses 18-19, “Your sons and daughters were

eating and drinking wine in their oldest brother’s house, and behold, a

great wind came across the wilderness and struck the four corners of the

house, and it fell upon the young people, and they are dead.”

Even though God had loosened the leash of Satan to do this, it is

not what Job focused on. “Job arose and tore his robe and shaved his

head and fell on the ground and worshiped. And he said, ‘Naked I came

from my mother’s womb, and naked shall I return. The LORD gave, and

the LORD has taken away; blessed be the name of the LORD’” (Job 1:20-

21). And the inspired writer added: “In all this Job did not sin or charge

God with wrong.”

Job had discovered with many of you that it is small comfort to

focus on the freedom of Satan to destroy. In the academic classroom and

in the apologetics discussion, the agency of Satan in our suffering may

lift a little the burden of God’s sovereignty for some; but for others, like

Job, there is more security and more relief and more hope and more support

and more glorious truth in despising Satan’s hateful hand and looking

straight past him to God for the cause and for his mercy.

Elihu helped Job see this mercy in Job 37:10-14. He said:

By the breath of God ice is given, and the broad waters are frozen fast.

He loads the thick cloud with moisture; the clouds scatter his lightning.

They turn around and around by his guidance, to accomplish all that

he commands them on the face of the habitable world. Whether for

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God 23

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 23

correction or for his land or for love, he causes it to happen. Hear this,

O Job; stop and consider the wondrous works of God.

Job’s first impulses in chapter 1 were exactly right. When James

wrote in the New Testament about the purpose of the book of Job, this

is what he said: “You have heard of the steadfastness of Job, and you

have seen the purpose of the Lord, how the Lord is compassionate and

merciful” (James 5:11).

God, not Satan, is the final ruler of wind—and the waves. Jesus

woke from sleep and, with absolute sovereignty, which he had from all

eternity and has this very moment, said, “‘Peace! Be still!’ And the wind

ceased, and there was a great calm” (Mark 4:39; see Ps. 135:5-7;

148:7). Satan is real and terrible. All his designs are hateful. But he is

not sovereign. God is. And when Satan went out to do Job harm, Job

was right to worship with the words “The LORD gave, and the LORD has

taken away; blessed be the name of the LORD.”

There’s not a plant or flower below,

But makes Thy glories known;

And clouds arise, and tempests blow,

By order from Thy throne.3

6. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s

Sickness-Causing Power

The Bible is vivid with the truth that Satan can cause disease. Acts 10:38

says that Jesus “went about doing good and healing all who were

oppressed by the devil, for God was with him.” The devil had oppressed

people with sickness. In Luke 13 Jesus finds a woman who had been bent

over, unable to stand up for eighteen years. He heals her on the Sabbath,

and in response to the criticism of the synagogue ruler he says, “Ought

not this woman, a daughter of Abraham whom Satan bound for eighteen

years, be loosed from this bond on the Sabbath day?” (v. 16). There

is no doubt that Satan causes much disease.

This is why Christ’s healings are a sign of the in-breaking of the

kingdom of God and its final victory over all disease and all the works

24 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

3 Isaac Watts, “I Sing the Mighty Power of God” (1715).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 24

of Satan. It is right and good to pray for healing. God has purchased it

in the death of his Son, with all the other blessings of grace, for all his

children (Isa. 53:5). But he has not promised that we get the whole inheritance

in this life. And he decides how much. We pray, and we trust his

answer. If you ask your Father for bread, he will not give you a stone.

If you ask him for a fish, he will not give you a serpent (see Matt. 7:9-

10). It may not be bread. And it may not be a fish. But it will be good

for you. That is what he promises (Rom. 8:28).

But beware lest anyone say that Satan is sovereign in our diseases.

He is not. When Satan went to God a second time in the book of Job,

God gave him permission this time to strike Job’s body. Then “Satan

went out from the presence of the LORD and smote Job with sore boils

from the sole of his foot to the crown of his head” (Job 2:7, AT). When

Job’s wife despaired and said, “Curse God and die” (2:9),” Job

responded exactly as he did before. He looked past the finite cause of

Satan to the ultimate cause of God and said, “Shall we receive good from

God, and shall we not accept evil?” (2:10, AT).

And lest we attribute error or irreverence to Job, the writer closes the

book in the last chapter by referring to Job’s terrible suffering like this:

“Then came to him all his brothers and sisters. . . . and comforted him

for all the evil that the LORD had brought upon him” (42:11). Satan is

real and full of hate, but he is not sovereign in sickness. God will not give

him even that tribute. As he says to Moses at the burning bush, “Who

has made man’s mouth? Who makes him mute, or deaf, or seeing, or

blind? Is it not I, the LORD?” (Ex. 4:11; see also 2 Cor. 12:7-9).

7. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s Use of

Animals and Plants

The imagery of Satan as a lion in 1 Peter 5:8 and as a “great dragon” in

Revelation 12:9 and as the “serpent of old” in Genesis 3 simply makes

us aware that in his destructive work Satan can, and no doubt does,

employ animals and plants—from the lion in the Coliseum, to the black

fly that causes river blindness, to the birds that carry the avian flu virus,

to the pit bull that attacks a child, to the bacteria in your belly that doctors

Barry Marshall and Robin Warren recently discovered cause ulcers

(winning for them the Nobel Prize in medicine). If Satan can kill and

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God 25

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 25

cause disease, no doubt he has at his disposal many large and microscopic

plants and animals.

But he cannot make them do what God forbids them to do. From

the giant Leviathan that God made to sport in the sea (Ps. 104:26) to

the tiny gnats that he summoned over the land of Egypt (Ex. 8:16-17),

God commands the world of animals and plants. The most vivid demonstrations

of it are in the book of Jonah. “The LORD appointed a great

fish to swallow up Jonah” (Jonah 1:17). And it did exactly as it had been

appointed. “And the LORD spoke to the fish, and it vomited Jonah out

upon the dry land” (Jonah 2:10). “Now the LORD God appointed a

plant and made it come up over Jonah” (Jonah 4:6). “But when dawn

came up the next day, God appointed a worm that attacked the plant,

so that it withered” (Jonah 4:7).

Fish, plant, worm—all appointed, all obedient. Satan can have a

hand here, but he is not sovereign. God is.

8. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s

Temptations to Sin

Much of our suffering comes from the sins of others against us and from

our own sins. Satan is called in the Bible “the tempter” (Matt. 4:3;

1 Thess. 3:5). This was the origin on earth of all the misery that we

know—Satan tempted Eve to sin, and sin brought with it the curse of

God on the natural order (Gen. 3:14-19; Rom. 8:21-23). Since that time

Satan has been tempting all human beings to do what will hurt themselves

and others.

But the most famous temptations in the Bible do not portray Satan

as sovereign in his tempting work. The Bible tells us in Luke 22:3-4 that

“Satan entered into Judas called Iscariot. . . . He went away and conferred

with the chief priests and officers how he might betray him to

them.” But Luke tells us that the betrayal of Jesus by Judas was the fulfillment

of Scripture: “The Scripture had to be fulfilled, which the Holy

Spirit spoke beforehand by the mouth of David concerning Judas”

(Acts 1:16). And therefore Peter said that Jesus was “delivered up

according to the definite plan and foreknowledge of God” (Acts 2:23).

As with Job, the Lord gave, and the Lord has taken away—the life of

26 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 26

his Son, Jesus Christ. Satan was not in charge of the crucifixion of

Christ. God was.

Even more famous than the temptation of Judas is the temptation

of Peter. We usually think of Peter’s three denials, not his temptation. But

Jesus says something to Peter in Luke 22:31-32 that makes plain Satan

is at work here but that he is not sovereign: “Simon, Simon, behold,

Satan demanded to have you, that he might sift you like wheat, but I

have prayed for you that your faith may not fail. And when you have

turned again [not: if you turn], strengthen your brothers.” Again, as with

Job, Satan seeks to destroy Peter’s faith. God gives Satan leash, but Jesus

intercedes for Peter, and says with complete sovereignty, “I have prayed

for you. You will fall, but not utterly. When you repent and turn back—

not if you turn back—strengthen your brothers.”

Satan is not sovereign in the temptations of Judas or Peter or you

or those you love. God is.

9. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s

Mind-Blinding Power

The worst suffering of all is the everlasting suffering of hell. Satan is

doomed to experience that suffering. Revelation 20:10 says, “The devil

who had deceived them was thrown into the lake of fire and sulfur where

the beast and the false prophet were, and they will be tormented day and

night forever and ever.” Satan’s aim is to take as many there with him

as he can. To do that, he must keep people blind to the gospel of Jesus

Christ, because the gospel “is the power of God for salvation to everyone

who believes” (Rom. 1:16). No one goes to hell who is justified by

the blood of Christ. “Since, therefore, we have now been justified by his

blood, much more shall we be saved by him from the wrath of God”

(Rom. 5:9). Only those who fail to embrace the wrath-absorbing substitutionary

work of Christ will suffer the wrath of God.

Therefore, Paul says in 2 Corinthians 4:4, “In their case the god of

this world [Satan] has blinded the minds of the unbelievers, to keep them

from seeing the light of the gospel of the glory of Christ, who is the image

of God.” This blinding is the most deadly weapon in the arsenal of

Satan. If he succeeds with a person, the suffering will be endless.

But at this most critical point Satan is not sovereign, God is. And

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God 27

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 27

oh, how thankful we should be! Two verses later in 2 Corinthians 4:6

Paul describes God’s blindness-removing power over against Satan’s

blinding power. “For God, who said, ‘Let light shine out of darkness,’

has shone in our hearts to give the light of the knowledge of the glory

of God in the face of Jesus Christ.” The comparison is between God’s

creating light at the beginning of the world and God’s creating light in

the darkened human heart. With total sovereignty God said at the

beginning and at your new birth, “Let there be light.” And there was

light.

We were dead in our trespasses and sins, but in great mercy God

made us alive together with Christ (Eph. 2:5). We were blind and spiritually

dead. We saw nothing compelling or beautiful in the gospel. It was

foolishness to us (1 Cor. 1:18, 23). But God spoke with sovereign

Creator authority, and his word created life and spiritual sight, and we

saw the glory of Christ in the gospel and believed. Satan is a terrible

enemy of the gospel. But he is not sovereign. God is. This is the reason

that any of us is saved.

10. Let Us Celebrate That God Is Sovereign Over Satan’s

Spiritual Bondage

Satan enslaves people in two ways. One way is with the misery and suffering

that comes from making us think there is no good God worth

trusting. The other way is with pleasure and prosperity, making us think

we have all we need so that God is irrelevant. To be freed from this

bondage we must repent. We must confess that God is good and trustworthy.

We must confess that the pleasures and prosperity of life do not

compare to the worth of God. But Satan hates this repentance and does

all he can to prevent it. That is his bondage.

But when God chooses to overcome our rebellion and Satan’s resistance,

nothing can stop him. And when God overcomes him and us, we

repent and Satan’s power is broken. Here it is in 2 Timothy 2:24-26:

And the Lord’s servant must not be quarrelsome but kind to everyone,

able to teach, patiently enduring evil, correcting his opponents with

gentleness. God may perhaps grant them repentance leading to a

knowledge of the truth, and they may escape from the snare of the

devil, after being captured by him to do his will.

28 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 28

Satan is not sovereign over his captives. God is. When God grants

repentance, we are set free from the snare of the devil, and we spend our

days celebrating our liberation and spreading it to others.

The One and Only Sovereign

The evil and suffering in this world are greater than any of us can comprehend.

But evil and suffering are not ultimate. God is. Satan, the great

lover of evil and suffering, is not sovereign. God is.

He does according to his will among the host of heaven and among the

inhabitants of the earth; and none can stay his hand or say to him,

“What have you done?” (Dan. 4:35)

[He declares] the end from the beginning and from ancient times things

not yet done, saying, “My counsel shall stand, and I will accomplish

all my purpose.” (Isa. 46:10)

Who has spoken and it came to pass, unless the Lord has commanded

it? Is it not from the mouth of the Most High that good and bad come?

(Lam. 3:37-38; see Amos 3:6)

Many are the plans in the mind of a man, but it is the purpose of the

LORD that will stand. (Prov. 19:21; see 16:9)

The lot is cast into the lap, but its every decision is from the LORD.

(Prov. 16:33)

Therefore, “If God is for us, who can be against us? . . . Who shall separate

us from the love of Christ? Shall tribulation, or distress, or persecution,

or famine, or nakedness, or danger, or sword? As it is written,

‘For your sake we are being killed all the day long; we are regarded as

sheep to be slaughtered.’ No, in all these things we are more than conquerors

through him who loved us” (Rom. 8:31, 35-37).

God moves in a mysterious way

His wonders to perform;

He plants His footsteps in the sea

And rides upon the storm.

Suffering and the Sovereignty of God 29

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 29

Deep in unfathomable mines

Of never failing skill

He treasures up His bright designs

And works His sovereign will.

Ye fearful saints, fresh courage take;

The clouds ye so much dread

Are big with mercy and shall break

In blessings on your head.

Judge not the Lord by feeble sense,

But trust Him for His grace;

Behind a frowning providence

He hides a smiling face.

His purposes will ripen fast,

Unfolding every hour;

The bud may have a bitter taste,

But sweet will be the flower.

Blind unbelief is sure to err

And scan His work in vain;

God is His own interpreter,

And He will make it plain.4

30 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

4 William Cowper, “God Moves in a Mysterious Way” (1774).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 30

In Night, his memoir of life in the death camps of Birkenau and

Auschwitz, Nobel Peace Prize winner Elie Wiesel struggles to convey

the experiences that consumed the devout faith of an earnestly pious

Jewish boy in the fires of the incomprehensible horrors of Nazi inhumanity.

1 Starting from the unsuspecting innocence of his early adolescence,

Wiesel chronicles the pathway from its sunny security to the

spiritual night that provoked him to write words like these:

[A]s the train stopped, . . . we saw flames rising from a tall chimney

into a black sky. . . . We stared at the flames in the darkness. A

wretched stench floated in the air. Abruptly, our [cattle car’s] doors

opened. . . .

“Everybody out! Leave everything inside. Hurry up!”

We jumped out. . . . In front of us, those flames. In the air, the

And we know that God causes all things to work together for good to those who

love God, to those who are called according to His purpose.

R o m a n s 8 : 2 8 ( N A S B )

1A word to my readers about how to approach this piece and others like it: We should never expect

to understand important but difficult ideas in one reading. Understanding difficult ideas always

requires perseverance and rereading. Good writers help you to ask new questions each time you read

a piece that later readings should help you to answer. I have tried to write this piece so that you can

understand it without reading the footnotes. So read it without reading them until it starts to make

sense, and then go back through it reading the footnotes, too. They are intended to make additional

points that fill in and support what I am saying in the body of the text. Above all, don’t get too discouraged!

You don’t have to understand a text like this in a week or a month or even in a year. So

keep rereading, remembering these words from Scripture, “Blessed is the one who finds wisdom, and

the one who gets understanding, for the gain from her is better than gain from silver and her profit

better than gold. She is more precious than jewels, and nothing you desire can compare with her. . . .

She is a tree of life to those who lay hold of her; those who hold her fast are called blessed” (Prov.

3:13-15, 18). You will understand if you keep on trying.

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ”:

Seeing God’s Gracious Hand in the

Hurts Others Do to Us

chapter 2

Mark R. Talbot

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 31

smell of burning flesh. It must have been around midnight. We had

arrived. In Birkenau. . . .

The SS officers gave the order.

“Form ranks of fives!” . . . [We began] to walk until we came to

a crossroads. . . . Not far from us, flames, huge flames, were rising from

a ditch. Something was being burned there. A truck drew close and

unloaded its hold: small children. Babies! Yes, I did see this, with my

own eyes . . . children thrown into the flames. . . . A little farther on,

there was another, larger pit for adults.

I pinched myself: Was I still alive? Was I awake? How was it possible

that men, women, and children were being burned and that the

world kept silent? No. All this could not be real. A nightmare perhaps

. . . Soon I would wake up with a start, my heart pounding, and find

that I was back in the room of my childhood, with my books. . . .

NEVER SHALL I FORGET that night, the first night in camp, that turned

my life into one long night seven times sealed.

Never shall I forget that smoke.

Never shall I forget the small faces of the children whose bodies I

saw transformed into smoke under a silent sky.

Never shall I forget those flames that consumed my faith forever.

Never shall I forget the nocturnal silence that deprived me for all

eternity of the desire to live.

Never shall I forget those moments that murdered my God and my

soul and turned my dreams to ashes.

Never shall I forget those things, even were I condemned to live as

long as God Himself.

Never.2

Language, as Wiesel declares, proves helpless to convey such realities.

It became clear as he wrote “that it would be necessary to invent a

new language” to convey these horrors adequately. For

how was one to rehabilitate . . . words betrayed and perverted by the

enemy? Hunger—thirst—fear—transport—selection—fire—chimney:

32 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

2 Elie Wiesel, Night (New York: Hill and Wang, 2006; first published in French in 1958), 28-34. In

a new preface, Wiesel says of these babies:

I did not say [in Night] that they were alive, but that was what I thought. But then I convinced

myself: no, they were dead, otherwise I surely would have lost my mind. And yet

fellow inmates also saw them; they were alive when they were thrown into the flames.

Historians . . . confirmed it. (xiv)

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 32

these words all have intrinsic meaning, but in those times, they meant

something else. Writing in my mother tongue . . . I would pause at every

sentence, and start over and over again. . . . All the dictionary had to

offer seemed meager, pale, lifeless. Was there a way to describe the last

journey in sealed cattle cars, the last voyage toward the unknown? Or

the discovery of a demented and glacial universe where to be inhuman

was human, where disciplined, educated men in uniform came to kill,

and innocent children and wary old men came to die? Or the countless

separations on a single fiery night, the tearing apart of entire families,

entire communities? . . . How was one to speak [of things like these]

without trembling and a heart broken for all eternity?3

These unspeakable horrors, piled on each other, disoriented Wiesel

and led him to throw off his faith. One incident stands out. Wiesel’s

Oberkapo was a Dutchman with over seven hundred prisoners under

his command. He was kind to them all. “In his ‘service,’” Wiesel writes,

was a young boy, a pipel, as they were called. This one had a delicate

and beautiful face—an incredible sight in this camp. . . .

One day the power failed at the central electric plant in Buna. The

Gestapo, summoned to inspect the damage, concluded that it was sabotage.

They found a trail. It led to the block of the . . . Oberkapo. And

after a search, they found a significant quantity of weapons.

The Oberkapo and his pipel were tortured, although they named no

names. The Oberkapo disappeared, but his pipel was condemned to die

along with two other inmates who were found with arms.

One day, as we returned from work, we saw three gallows . . . . Roll

call. The SS surrounding us, machine guns aimed at us: the usual ritual.

Three prisoners in chains—and, among them, the little pipel . . . .

The SS seemed more preoccupied, more worried, than usual. To

hang a child in front of thousands of onlookers was not a small matter.

The head of the camp read the verdict. All eyes were on the child.

He was pale, almost calm, but he was biting his lips as he stood in the

shadow of the gallows. . . .

The three condemned prisoners together stepped onto the chairs.

In unison, the nooses were placed around their necks.

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 33

3 Ibid., ix. These words were written in 2006 as the preface to a new translation.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 33

“Long live liberty!” shouted the two men.

But the boy was silent.

“Where is merciful God, where is He?” someone behind me was

asking.

At the signal, the three chairs were tipped over. . . .

Then came the march past the victims. The two men were no longer

alive. Their tongues were hanging out, swollen and bluish. But the third

rope was still moving: the child, too light, was still breathing . . .

And so he remained for more than half an hour, lingering between

life and death, writhing before our eyes. And we were forced to look

at him at close range. He was still alive when I passed him. His tongue

was still red, his eyes not yet extinguished.

Behind me, I heard the same man asking:

“For God’s sake, where is God?”

And from within me, I heard a voice answer:

“Where is He? This is where—hanging here from this gallows . . .”4

Rosh Hashanah came, and ten thousand gathered in the camp to bless

God’s name. The officiating inmate’s voice rose “powerful yet broken,

amid the weeping, the sobbing, the sighing of the entire ‘congregation’:

‘All the earth and universe are God’s!’ . . . ‘And I,’” Wiesel writes,

I, the former mystic, was thinking: Yes, man is stronger, greater than

God. . . . [L]ook at these men whom You have betrayed, allowing them

to be tortured, slaughtered, gassed, and burned, what do they do? They

pray before You! They praise Your name!

“All of creation bears witness to the Greatness of God!”

In days gone by, Rosh Hashanah had dominated my life. I knew

that my sins grieved the Almighty and so I pleaded for forgiveness. In

those days, I fully believed that the salvation of the world depended on

every one of my deeds, on every one of my prayers.

But now, I no longer pleaded for anything. I was no longer able

to lament. On the contrary, I felt very strong. I was the accuser, God

the accused. My eyes had opened and I was alone, terribly alone in a

world without God, without man. Without love or mercy. I was nothing

but ashes now, but I felt myself to be stronger than this Almighty

to whom my life had been bound for so long. In the midst of these men

assembled for prayer, I felt like an observer, a stranger.5

34 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

4 Ibid., 63-65.

5 Ibid., 67f.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 34

Human brutality to other humans had shattered Wiesel’s faith:

In the beginning there was faith—which was childish; trust—which is

vain; and illusion—which is dangerous.

We believed in God, trusted in man, and lived with the illusion

that every one of us has been entrusted with a sacred spark from the

Shekhinah’s flame; that every one of us carries in his eyes and in his soul

a reflection of God’s image.

That,” Wiesel concluded, “was the source if not the cause of all our

ordeals.”6

You and I did not go through the Holocaust. We have, at most, only

the dimmest notions of the horrors Wiesel experienced. Yet we may

know all too well something about the multitudinous ways in which

human beings hurt each other, both intentionally and unintentionally;

and we may find this knowledge disorienting and shattering to our own

faith. Dennis Rader, the Wichita BTK killer—“BTK” was Rader’s

acronym for “bind, torture, kill”—was in the news in the summer of

2005, and that fall there was a made-for-television movie of his life and

terrible crimes. Why does God allow such things to happen?7 Most of

us know couples where a spouse has been unfaithful, causing immense

grief to the other spouse and to their children. We know of situations

where drunken drivers have veered into the wrong lanes and killed or

maimed innocent people. In any large crowd, there are bound to be some

people who were sexually abused as children or who have been raped.

Some of us may know someone who was tortured. Indeed, things like

these may have happened to us, while we were Christians, and while we

were begging God to make them stop. So why didn’t he?

Some of you may sometimes consider your childhoods and wish

your parents had been more careful to help you to grow up as godly

Christians. You are perplexed about why they didn’t seem to care more

about doing that. Why didn’t they talk to you about how much you

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 35

6 Ibid., xf. This passage is found in Wiesel’s new preface, where he tells us that “these cynical musings”

were the way the original Yiddish version of his book opened before his editor cut them.

7As we will see, “allow” is a theologically loaded term in these contexts. I shall argue that God does

not merely passively permit such things by standing by and not stopping them. Rather, he actively wills

them by ordaining them and then bringing them about, yet without himself thereby becoming the

author of sin. As the Reformers insisted, although God is not the author of sin, he is also no mere “idle

spectator” to it. (I explain the concept of God’s ordaining something at the end of my second section.)

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 35

would regret doing some of the things you did? Some of you may be

thinking right now about distressing coworkers. Perhaps your supervisor

really dislikes you, treats you unfairly, and even lies to his superiors

about you, but you can’t stop him. Or perhaps you are part of a

Christian organization that has some employees who teach or live in

clearly unbiblical ways, and this distresses you day after day. In that situation,

you may find yourself wondering why God doesn’t just move

those people out and make the organization more like what, it seems,

he must want it to be.

Then, again, some of us may be thinking about our own choices.

We may be regretting something we have said or done. And we may realize

that if our circumstances had been just a little different, then everything,

it seems, would be fine right now—if you hadn’t had that porn

site pop up unexpectedly on your computer screen, then you might never

have gotten hooked on Internet porn; or if you hadn’t bumped into that

co-worker when you were already so upset, then you wouldn’t have said

those things that have now cost you your job; or if you hadn’t met that

man, there would have been no chance of your having cheated on your

husband with him. So why did God allow things to go the way they did?

You may not doubt or deny your responsibility and guilt, but it still

seems that God could have kept you from falling into sin.

These are the sorts of situations that I want to consider. As my

examples suggest, we will not just consider the ways that we hurt each

other; we will also consider the ways that we hurt ourselves. How does

God’s will relate to our wills when we hurt each other and ourselves?

Where is God when human beings cause themselves and others such

hurt? Why doesn’t God stop such things?

Open Theism

There is one answer to these kinds of situations that I want to challenge

right away.

Many of us have heard about “open theism.” Open theism was

developed to deal with these very situations. It does so by addressing

how our free wills and our responsibility are related to God’s will and

the evils that we suffer and see. Open theists want to take God off the

hook for the kinds of evil that we do. They explain these evils by claim-

36 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 36

ing that God can’t prevent them without restricting or destroying our

freedom. But, they claim, God doesn’t do that because he takes our freedom

to be so valuable. He takes our freedom to be so valuable that he

is willing to pay the price of there being all sorts of human suffering that

is caused by our misuse of it.

Gregory Boyd, pastor of Woodland Hills Church in Saint Paul,

Minnesota, is an open theist, and he tells this sad story in his God of the

Possible: A Biblical Introduction to the Open View of God to drive

home why:

Several years ago after preaching a sermon on how God directs our

paths, I was approached by an angry young woman (I’ll call her

Suzanne). Once I was able to get past the initial raging words—

directed more against God than they were against me—Suzanne told

me her tragic story.

Suzanne had been raised in a wonderful Christian home and had

from a very young age been a passionate, godly disciple of Jesus Christ.

Indeed, since her early teen years, her only aspirations in life were to

be a missionary to Taiwan and to marry a godly man with a similar

vision with whom she could raise a godly, missionary-minded family.

She had accepted the common evangelical myth that God had one right

man picked out for her and so had committed herself to praying daily

for this future husband. She prayed that he would acquire a similar

vision to evangelize Taiwan, that he would remain faithful to the Lord

and remain pure in heart, and so on.

Suzanne eventually went to a Christian college and, quite miraculously,

quickly met a young man who shared her vision for Taiwan.

Indeed, the commonalities between them as well as all the “coincidences”

that had individually led them to just that college at just that

time were truly astounding. For three and a half years they courted one

another, prayed together, attended church together, prepared themselves

for the mission field, and fell deeply in love with one another.

During their senior year, this man proposed to Suzanne; surprisingly,

she did not immediately say yes to his proposal. Even though so many

pieces had miraculously fallen into place, she needed to have an

unequivocal confirmation in her heart that this was the man she was

to marry.

For several months, Suzanne and her boyfriend fasted and prayed

over the matter. They consulted with their parents, their pastor, and

their friends, who agreed to give the matter prayerful attention.

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 37

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 37

Everyone concluded that this marriage was indeed God’s will. Before

too long, God gave Suzanne the confirmation she needed. While in

prayer, she was overwhelmed by a supernatural sense of joy and peace

wrapped up with a very clear confirmation that this marriage was, in

fact, God’s design for her life.

Shortly after college, the newly married couple went away to a

missionary school to prepare for their missionary career. Two years

into their training, Suzanne learned to her horror that her husband was

involved in an adulterous relationship with a fellow student. Her husband

repented, but within several months returned to the affair.

Despite intensive Christian counseling, this pattern repeated itself several

times over the next three years.

During these three years, Suzanne’s husband’s spiritual convictions

altogether disappeared. . . . He grew increasingly argumentative,

hostile, and even verbally and physically abusive. In one argument

toward the end of their marriage, he actually fractured Suzanne’s

cheekbone in a fit of rage. Soon after . . . [he] filed for divorce and

moved in with his lover. Two weeks later, Suzanne discovered she was

pregnant.

The whole sad ordeal left Suzanne emotionally destroyed and spiritually

bankrupt. All of her dreams had crashed down on her. She felt

that her life was basically over. The worst part of it, however, was not

the pain her husband had inflicted on her. The worst part was how profoundly

the ordeal had damaged her previously vibrant relationship

with the Lord.

Understandably, Suzanne could not fathom how the Lord could

respond to her lifelong prayers by setting her up with a man he knew

would do this to her and her child. Some Christian friends had suggested

that perhaps she hadn’t heard God correctly. But if it wasn’t

God’s voice that she and everyone else had heard regarding this marriage,

she concluded, then no one could ever be sure they heard God’s

voice. This was as clear as it could ever get. She had a very good point.

Other friends, reminiscent of Job’s friends, suggested that her marriage

had indeed been God’s will. Knowing its outcome, the Lord had

led her into it because he loves her so much and was trying to humble

her, build her character, or perhaps punish her for previous sin. If a lesson

was the point of it all, Suzanne remarked, then God is a very poor

teacher. The ordeal didn’t teach her anything; it simply left her bitter.

Initially, I tried to help Suzanne understand that this was her exhusband’s

fault, not God’s, but her reply was more than adequate to

invalidate my encouragement: If God knew exactly what her husband

38 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 38

would do, then he bears all the responsibility for setting her up the way

he did. I could not argue against her point, but I could offer an alternative

way of understanding the situation.

I suggested to her that God felt as much regret over the confirmation

he had given Suzanne as he did about his decision to make Saul

king of Israel. . . . Not that it was a bad decision—at the time, her exhusband

was a good man with a godly character. The prospects that

he and Suzanne would have a happy marriage and fruitful ministry

were, at the time, very good. Indeed, I strongly suspect that he had

influenced Suzanne and her ex-husband toward this college with their

marriage in mind.

Because her ex-husband was a free agent, however, even the best

decisions can have sad results. Over time, and through a series of

choices, Suzanne’s ex-husband had opened himself up to the enemy’s

influence and became involved in an immoral relationship. Initially, all

was not lost, and God and others tried to restore him, but he chose to

resist the promptings of the Spirit, and consequently his heart grew

darker. Suzanne’s ex-husband had become a very different person from

the man God had confirmed to Suzanne to be a good candidate for

marriage. This, I assured Suzanne, grieved God’s heart at least as

deeply as it grieved hers.

By framing the ordeal with the context of an open future [in other

words, within the context of human free choices which even God cannot

know in advance of our making them], Suzanne was able to understand

the tragedy of her life in a new way. She didn’t have to abandon

all confidence in her ability to hear God and didn’t have to accept that

somehow God intended this ordeal “for her own good.” Her faith in

God’s character and her love toward God were eventually restored and

she was finally able to move on with her life.

Understandably, Taiwan was no longer on her heart, but fortunately,

the “God of the possible” always has a plan B and a plan C.

He’s also wise enough to know how to weave our failed plan A’s into

these alternative plans so beautifully that looking back, it may look like

B or C was his original plan all along. This isn’t a testimony to his

exhaustive definite foreknowledge; it’s a testimony to his unfathomable

wisdom.

Without having the open view to offer, I don’t know how one

could effectively minister to a person in Suzanne’s dilemma.8

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 39

8 Gregory A. Boyd, God of the Possible: A Biblical Introduction to the Open View of God (Grand

Rapids, Mich.: Baker, 2000), 103-6.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 39

When I first started thinking about the relationship between God

and evil many years ago—in fact, very shortly after having had a paralyzing

accident when I was seventeen—a fair amount of this way of

explaining why we suffer struck me as exactly right.9 After a couple of

years of thinking intensely about this issue, I concluded that God had to

put up with all kinds of things that he did not like in order to preserve

our freedom. This still strikes me as a natural way to think about this

issue because it fits in with our own experience. For sometimes we have

to put up with what we don’t like in order to leave other people their

freedom. So, “Of course,” we think, “it must be the same for God.”

What I want to show is why we shouldn’t think this way, as natural as

it is.

I think it is important to say that I never went as far as Boyd does—

and I don’t think that most Christians do. It is not natural to think that

God makes mistakes—and yet that is what Boyd seems to imply when

he says that God must regret the way he guided Suzanne, including having

influenced her and her future husband to attend the college they

did.10 According to Boyd, God made a good—indeed, the “best”—decision

but it had really bad results. God, in Boyd’s way of looking at

things, can be as mistaken as we may be about what someone will actually

choose to do. And so I don’t think it is unfair to say that Boyd’s God

is one who sometimes just rolls the dice. He is better at mopping up any

messes afterwards than we would be, but he still can be caught out and

be more or less helpless to prevent our doing and suffering bad things.

I hope this part of Boyd’s thinking strikes you as badly as it strikes

me. For, as I will now try to show, it challenges God’s glory, and it threatens

our sense of assurance that, when things seem to be going really

badly for us, the God who loves us remains fully in control.

40 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

9 I wrote about my accident and the theological journey it initiated in “True Freedom: The Liberty

that Scripture Portrays as Worth Having,” in Beyond the Bounds: Open Theism and the Undermining

of Biblical Christianity, ed. John Piper, Justin Taylor, and Paul Kjoss Helseth (Wheaton, Ill.:

Crossway Books, 2003), 77-109. In that piece, I reflect on a wider range of evils than I do here and

I interact more carefully with the specific claims of open theism.

10 For a relatively forthright acknowledgement by an open theist that God can be and has been mistaken

about some things, see John Sanders, The God Who Risks: A Theology of Providence

(Downers Grove, Ill.: InterVarsity Press, 1998), 132. This case of Suzanne’s would clearly fit under

one of Sanders’s ways of characterizing a mistake. He says that “we might say that God would be

mistaken if he believed that X would happen”—think here of God believing that Suzanne and her

husband would have a happy marriage and a fruitful ministry—“and, in fact, Xdoes not come about.

In this sense,” Sanders claims, “the Bible does attribute some mistakes to God.”

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 40

Scripture’s General Perspective on God’s Relationship to Evil

What are the issues that we need to address in order to think biblically

about this topic?

First, we need to know what Scripture says in general about God’s

relationship to evil. Scripture declares that the Judge of all the earth will

always do what is right (see Gen. 18:25). God is, as Moses sings, “the

Rock, his works are perfect, and all his ways are just.” He is a “faithful

God who does no wrong, upright and just is he” (Deut. 32:4, NIV). God

never does evil.

Yet this is not to say that God does not create, send, permit, or even

move others to do evil,11 for Scripture is clear that nothing arises, exists,

or endures independently of God’s will. Thus, when the writer of

Hebrews states that Christ “upholds the universe by the word of his

power” (1:3), he is claiming that God the Son is providentially governing

everything through sustaining all of the universe’s objects and events

as he carries each of them to its appointed end by his all-powerful

word.12 This follows from the fact that the Greek word for “upholds”

is pherø, which means to bring or bear or produce or carry. As Wayne

Grudem notes, pherø “is commonly used in the New Testament for carrying

something from one place to another, such as bringing a paralyzed

man on a bed to Jesus (Luke 5:18), bringing wine to the steward of the

feast (John 2:8), or bringing a cloak and books to Paul (2 Tim. 4:13).”

Consequently, in our verse’s context it “does not mean simply ‘sustain,’

but has the sense of active, purposeful control over the thing being carried

from one place to another,” especially since pherø appears in our

verse as a present participle, which “indicates that Jesus is ‘continually

carrying along all things’ in the universe by his word of power.”13 So here

is the picture: God the Son holds each and every aspect of creation,

including all of its evil aspects, in his “hands”—that is, within his all-

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 41

11 To move someone to do evil is not the same as tempting that person to do evil. Scripture tells us

that God tempts no one (see James 1:13). For how moving someone to do evil and tempting that person

to do evil differ, see the passages from W. G. T. Shedd cited in n. 56, and especially 318-22.

12 See William L. Lane, Hebrews 1–8, Word Biblical Commentary, vol. 47A (Dallas: Word, 1991),

loc. cit.: “The . . . clause ascribes to the Son the providential government of all created existence, which

is the function of God himself. As the pre-creational Wisdom of God, the Son not only embodies

God’s glory but also reveals this to the universe as he sustains all things and bears them to their

appointed end by his omnipotent word.”

13 Wayne Grudem, Systematic Theology: An Introduction to Biblical Doctrine (Grand Rapids, Mich.:

Zondervan, 1994), 316.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 41

powerful and ever-effectual word—and carries it by that word to where

it accomplishes exactly what he wants it to do.

Ephesians 1:11 goes even further by declaring that God in Christ

“works all things according to the counsel of his will.” Here the Greek

word for “works” is energeø, which indicates that God not merely carries

all of the universe’s objects and events to their appointed ends but

that he actually brings about all things in accordance with his will. In

other words, it isn’t just that God manages to turn the evil aspects of our

world to good for those who love him; it is rather that he himself brings

about these evil aspects for his glory (see Ex. 9:13-16; John 9:3) and his

people’s good (see Heb. 12:3-11; James 1:2-4). This includes—as incredible

and as unacceptable as it may currently seem—God’s having even

brought about the Nazis’ brutality at Birkenau and Auschwitz as well

as the terrible killings of Dennis Rader and even the sexual abuse of a

young child: “The LORD has made everything for its own purpose, even

the wicked for the day of evil” (Prov. 16:4, NASB ).14 “When times are

good, be happy; but when times are bad, consider: God has made the

one as well as the other” (Eccl. 7:14, NIV).

As Thomas Goodwin noted, in this passage from Ephesians Paul

wants to assure his Jewish Christian brothers and sisters that God has

worked grace in their hearts as the consequence of his having predestined

them before all time for salvation in Christ so that they will be confident

of their eternal inheritance.15 So how does Paul proceed? He argues from

the general principle to the specific case. God “‘works all things after the

counsel of his own will;’ he plotted every thing beforehand, therefore certainly

this [particular thing].”16 In thus arguing from the general to the spe-

42 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

14 The Hebrew word for “evil” in this verse is ra>, as is the word for “bad” in Ecclesiastes 7:14. Ra>,

as I point out below regarding Isaiah 45:7, is the primary Hebrew term for evil.

15 Verses 11 and 12 read: “In him we have obtained an inheritance, having been predestined according

to the purpose of him who works all things according to the counsel of his will, so that we who

were the first to hope in Christ might be to the praise of his glory.” Verse 13 then starts with the words,

“In him you also, when you heard the word of truth.” Goodwin, F. F. Bruce, Gordon Fee, Peter

O’Brien, and others argue from the “you also” that verses 11 and 12 are referring to the first Jewish

Christians and that verse 13 then brings in the later Gentile Christians. This reading seems to be corroborated

by Acts 18:24–19:20.

16 Thomas Goodwin, An Exposition of the First Chapter of the Epistle to the Ephesians in The Works

of Thomas Goodwin, vol. 1 (Eureka, Calif.: Tanski Publications, 1996), loc. cit.; my emphasis.

Goodwin lived from 1600–1680. His Ephesians commentary was published the year after his death.

Goodwin was one of the greatest of the English Puritans.

Ordinarily, if we were to say that someone did something according to the counsel of his own

will, what we would mean is that the person first thought through on his own what he was going to

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 42

cific, Paul is arguing from what would be obvious to his biblically literate

Jewish brothers and sisters to what would be less obvious for them as relatively

new converts to Christ. These Jewish Christians would know that

God—the God of the Old Testament whom they now recognized as the

Father of Jesus Christ—declares “the end from the beginning” (Isa.

46:10)—and, by implication, knows and has ordered everything inbetween,

even down to foreseeing and ordering the words we will speak

(see Ps. 139:4 with Prov. 16:1).17 They would know that the One who said,

“My counsel shall stand, and I will accomplish all my purpose,” is the One

who ensures this by bringing everything about, including, in the immediate

context of Isaiah’s words, “calling a bird of prey from the east, . . . from

a far country” (Isa. 46:10f.)—that is, Cyrus the Great, king of Persia from

559–530 B.C., who would conquer Babylon in 539 B.C. and then allow the

Jews to return to Jerusalem so that they could rebuild the temple (see Ezra

1:1-4). God here calls the pagan, unbelieving Cyrus “a man to fulfill my

purpose” (Isa. 46:11, NIV). From events as small as the fall of the tiniest

sparrow (see Matt. 10:29) to the death, at the hands of lawless men, of

his own dear Son (see Acts 2:23 with 4:28), God speaks and then brings

his word to pass; he purposes and then does what he has planned (see Isa.

46:11). Nothing that exists or occurs falls outside God’s ordaining will.18

Nothing, including no evil person or thing or event or deed. God’s

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 43

do and then carried out what he had determined to do without having to take account of anything

other than what he had determined to do. In other words, what he had determined to do was all that

he took account of in acting as he did; he did not have to adjust what he did to anything beyond what

he had determined to do. So if we interpret this part of Ephesians 1:11 according to its plain sense,

then we will affirm with the Scriptures that “Our God is in the heavens; he does all that he pleases”

(Ps. 115:3; see also 135:6; Dan. 4:35; and Isa. 46:10, which is quoted below).

At this point, open theists may seem to have one more move available to them. It seems that they

could retort that what God has been pleased to do is to give human beings the sort of freedom that

involves our deciding what we will do rather than his determining what we will do. But this move is not

really a biblical option, given the fact that God would not then be working all things “after the counsel

of his own will.” For he would then be taking into account not only what he willed but what we will.

17 In Isaiah 46:9, God declares that he is God “and there is no other; I am God, and there is none like

me,” which is immediately followed by the words of verse 10: “declaring the end from the beginning

and from ancient times things not yet done, saying, ‘My counsel shall stand, and I will accomplish

all my purpose.’” The fact that verse 10 is preceded by this declaration of God’s that there is none

like him suggests or implies that God’s exhaustive foreknowledge is what theologians call a differentium

that is, a distinguishing feature, or something that sets him apart and makes him different

from every other being. Here the New Living Translation captures the intent of these two verses nicely:

“And do not forget the things I have done throughout history. For I am God—I alone! I am God,

and there is no one else like me. Only I can tell you what is going to happen even before it happens.

Everything I plan will come to pass, for I do whatever I wish.”

18 It is crucial to recognize, as Goodwin did, that Paul’s argument would not work if he could not

assume that his fellow Jewish Christians would agree that God works all things according to the

counsel of his will. If anything whatsoever could fall outside God’s will, then why not their eternal

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 43

foreordination is the ultimate reason why everything comes about,

including the existence of all evil persons and things and the occurrence

of any evil acts or events. And so it is not inappropriate to take God to

be the creator, the sender, the permitter, and sometimes even the instigator

of evil. This is what Scripture explicitly claims. For instance, Isaiah

45:7 reports God to declare: “I form light and create darkness, I make

well-being and create calamity, I am the LORD, who does all these

things.” The word for “create” here is the Hebrew word bara’, which

is the same word that is used for God’s creative work in Genesis 1; and

the word for “calamity” is ra>, which is the word that is almost always

translated “evil” in the Old Testament, as we find in places like Genesis

2–3; 6:5; 13:13; and 50:15, 20.19 Again, Amos asks rhetorically; “When

a trumpet sounds in a city, do not the people tremble? When disaster

comes to a city, has not the LORD caused it?” (3:6, NIV).20 Isaiah also

says, “The LORD has mixed within [the leaders of the Egyptian cities of

44 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

inheritance? This implies that neither Paul himself nor any of the godly Jews of his day would have

considered open theism a biblical possibility.

Open theists often claim that Scripture includes claims that can be taken to support their position

as well as claims that support their opponents’ position. They then argue that the passages that

seem to support their position ought to be taken to determine how we should interpret the passages

that seem to oppose their position. But here we have an argument from Paul that clarifies what he

and his Jewish brothers and sisters took to be beyond question: God works all things according to

the counsel of his will. This establishes that we should not take the biblical texts that can be read as

supporting open theism as determining our interpretation of the ones that cannot. We must take the

biblical texts that contradict open theism as the determinative texts, and then interpret the supposedly

“open” passages in their light, if we are to remain true to what God has intended us to understand

from his word, given Paul’s argument. (In fact, one reason to interpret verses such as Psalm

139:4 and Proverbs 16:1 as I have in this argument, and thus we have reason to reject, e.g., David J.

A. Clines’s interpretation of such verses in his “Predestination in the Old Testament,” in Grace

Unlimited, ed. Clark H. Pinnock (Minneapolis: Bethany House, 1975), 116f.). It is curious that open

theists like Boyd and John Sanders never even acknowledge Ephesians 1:11, much less grapple with

Paul’s argument.

I explain the concepts of God’s ordaining will and his foreordination (as it is broached in the

second sentence of the next paragraph) in the last paragraph of this section. What God ordains often

differs from what he commands. For instance, God commands all human beings to worship his Son

(see, e.g., Phil. 2:9-11), but he ordained that certain specific human beings would disobey that command

and blaspheme against him instead (see, e.g., 2 Peter 2 and Jude, especially vv. 4, 8, 13-15).

Again, he commands that all people everywhere repent (see Acts 17:30) and yet he has ordained that

some will not (see 2 Peter 2, especially vv. 9 and 17). In Reformed circles, this distinction between

what God ordains and what he commands is often marked as the distinction between his secret will—

which is never frustrated—and his revealed will—which human beings violate regularly. For a nice

summary of the distinction, see Grudem, op. cit., 213-16.

19 God’s creative activity in Isaiah 45:7 is stated in terms of his forming or making or creating whole

kinds or categories of things. He is not represented in this verse as creating a particular light or a particular

calamity; he creates light as such and evil as such. So this verse cuts off the possibility that God

sometimes creates evil and sometimes does not.

20 The New International Version’s translation of the second half of this verse seems to me to be preferable

over other translations, such as the English Standard Version’s (which reads: “Does disaster come

to a city, unless the LORD has done it?”) because it avoids potentially confusing the reader with the

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 44

Zoan and Memphis] a spirit of distortion,”21 and they have then “led

Egypt astray in all that it does” (19:14, NASB).

Nor is maintaining that God never does evil equivalent to claiming

that he does not send evil. Sometimes he sends evil spirits—one to torment

King Saul (see 1 Sam. 16:14-23), another which caused the leaders

of Shechem to deal treacherously with King Abimelech (see Judg.

9:23), and a third to lie through King Ahab’s prophets and thus entice

him to travel to Ramoth-gilead where he would be killed (see 1 Kings

22:13-40). And sometimes he sends delusions, as Paul affirms when he

says that, because the perishing refuse “to love the truth and so be saved,

. . . God sends them a strong delusion, so that they may believe what is

false, in order that all may be condemned who did not believe the truth

but had pleasure in unrighteousness” (2 Thess. 2:11f.).

In Genesis 19, God sent angels to destroy Sodom and Gomorrah (see

especially v. 13). In Exodus 7–12, he sent the ten plagues. In Numbers 21:6,

he sent poisonous snakes to bite the grumbling Israelites. In 2 Samuel 24,

he sent a pestilence on Israel that killed seventy thousand men. In 2 Kings

24:2-4, after having vowed earlier that because of Manasseh’s sins he would

bring upon Jerusalem and Judah “such evil [ra>] that the ears of every one

who hears of it will tingle” (21:12, RSV), God sent marauding bands of foreign

peoples against Judah to destroy it because of King Manasseh’s sins.

All this came upon Judah by God’s word (see 24:3).22 In Isaiah 10, God

vows to send Assyria against godless Judah, but then he also vows to “pun-

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 45

possibility that God does evil. As Douglas Stuart notes in HoseaJoel, Word Biblical Commentary,

vol. 31 (Waco, Tex.: Word, 1987), 324, the focus of verses 3-6 of chapter 3 is “on certain natural

associations of a cause and effect variety”—and so rendering the Hebrew word >asah as “cause”

rather than the much more common “do” is certainly not inappropriate.

As Grudem points out regarding the interpretation of Isaiah 45:7, while someone could try to

restrict the kind of evil that God creates to nothing other than natural disaster, there is no reason why

we should take it so restrictedly (see op. cit., 326, n. 7). In fact, the proper interpretation of Amos

3:6 implies that such a restriction is improper. For warning trumpets were blown in ancient cities primarily

to signal that those cities were facing or undergoing military attack (see Stuart, op. cit., 325:

“Everyone knew the significance of blowing a [trumpet] in a city. It was the means of alarm (cf. Hos.

5:8) and usually warned of enemy attack.”). So Amos 3:6 affirms that God is the ultimate cause of

even those disasters that can be attributed to human choice.

Grudem’s examination of the relationship between God and evil, as found on 322-30 of his

book, is among the best.

21 The translations of “confusion” and “dizziness” for the Hebrew >av>eh seem too weak.

22 In order to avoid confusion with the distinction that I made in footnote 18 between what God

ordains and what he commands, it is probably important to note that the phrase usually translated

here as “at his command” is more literally translated as “from his mouth.” In other words, what this

verse is claiming is that all of this came about because it was part of God’s all-powerful and evereffectual

word.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 45

ish the speech of the arrogant heart of the king of Assyria” (v. 12) by sending

a plague among his warriors (v. 16). When the Lord’s angel fulfilled this

vow, 185,000 Assyrian warriors died (see Isa. 37:36).23

Scripture also establishes that God permits others to do evil, as

when he permitted Satan to destroy all of Job’s property and children,

so that it would be clear that even then Job would not curse God (see

Job 1:6-12), and when he allowed foreign nations in Old Testament

times each to walk in its own sinful way (see Acts 14:16). The idea that

no one ever does evil to someone else unless God at least permits or

allows it is suggested by other passages, such as Genesis 31:7, where

Jacob says to his wives that God did not allow their father Laban to do

ra> to him; and Exodus 12:23, where Moses states that God will not

allow the destroyer to enter the Jewish homes and kill their firstborn;

and Luke 22:31, where the use of the Greek exaiteø seems to imply that

Satan had to ask God permission before he could sift Simon.24

Indeed, some biblical passages, such as Isaiah 19:2, portray God as

moving others to do evil: “I will stir up Egyptians against Egyptians, and

they will fight, each against another and each against his neighbor, city

against city, kingdom against kingdom” (see also 9:11). Second Samuel

24:1 states that “the anger of the LORD was kindled against Israel” and

so “he incited David against them” by inciting David to count the

Israelites.25 Moreover, reading Job 1:6-12 prompts the conclusion that

46 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

23 In 2 Kings 17:23-25 we are told that God sent lions among the foreign peoples that the king of Assyria

had sent to Samaria to replace the Israelites whom he had exiled. Many of us probably put ourselves

in the place of the exiled Israelites instead of the foreigners and so we may not readily recognize that

to the foreigners this was a real evil, even if it was an evil by which God was redressing the evil done

to his people. The same point must be kept in mind when reading about, e.g., God’s sending hail against

the Egyptians in the seventh plague (Ex. 9:23-26), which to the Egyptians was a very great evil, as is

clear from the fact that Pharaoh then said, “This time I have sinned; the LORD is in the right, and I and

my people are in the wrong. Plead with the LORD, for there has been enough of God’s thunder and

hail” (v. 27f.). This is the only time that the Pharaoh was so affected by one of the plagues that he

admitted that he had sinned. (At Deut. 6:22, Moses says, “And the LORD showed signs and wonders,

great and grievous, against Egypt and against Pharaoh and all his household, before our eyes”.)

24This is the interpretation of Luke 22:31 in versions such as the NIV and the NASB. This claim can ultimately

be expanded into the claim that no evil—whether or not it is perpetrated by another person—

can befall God’s people without God’s permission. Thus Psalm 16:10 claims that God will not allow

David to see corruption. Similarly, Psalm 55:22 claims that God “will never permit the righteous to be

moved.” Psalms 66:9 and 121:3 and 1 Corinthians 10:13 further confirm the claim that God protects

his people and will not allow any ultimate spiritual harm to befall them. In each of these cases the NASB

gives what I think is the more felicitous translation by translating the appropriate terms as “allow”

instead of the English Standard Version’s “let.” I leave it to my readers to work out from Scripture the

implication that no evil befalls anyone—not even the wicked—without God’s permitting it.

25The parallel passage found at 1 Chronicles 21:1 tells us that it was Satan who incited David to commit

this evil, which suggests that God incited David to this evil through permitting Satan to incite him.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 46

when God said to Satan, “Have you considered my servant Job, that

there is none like him on the earth, a blameless and upright man, who

fears God and turns away from evil?” in verse 8, he was actually putting

Job in Satan’s gunsights.

I have belabored the Scriptures in order to drive home this point: as

one of my students said rather wonderfully in responding to open theism,

“Open theists are trying to let God off the hook for evil. But God

doesn’t want to be let off the hook.” The verses that I have cited establish

that Scripture repudiates the claim that God does evil while at the

same time everywhere implying that God ordains any evil there is. To

say that God “ordains” something is to say that he has planned and purposed

and willed it from before the creation of the world—that is, from

before time began.26 And whatever God has eternally planned and purposed

and willed—whatever he has in that sense foreordained—

inevitably takes place; to say that God has ordained (or foreordained)

something is to say that he has determined that it will take place.27 As

Isaiah puts it, “The LORD of hosts has sworn, ‘As I have planned, so shall

it be, and as I have purposed, so shall it stand’. . . . For the LORD of hosts

has purposed, and who will annul it?” (14:24, 27). Nothing—no evil

thing or person or event or deed—falls outside God’s ordaining will.

Nothing arises, exists, or endures independently of God’s will. So when

even the worst of evils befall us, they do not ultimately come from anywhere

other than God’s hand.

Human Freedom and Responsibility

This is strong meat. It can be very hard for us to digest these truths. Yet

even considering these claims raises other issues. For if these claims are

true, then what becomes of human freedom? If everything that occurs

happens because God has willed it to occur from before time began, then

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 47

26 For the general concept of God’s ordaining things before time began and then bringing them to pass

in history, see (e.g.) 1 Corinthians 2:7 with Ephesians 1:7-10. Even Boyd admits that God has

predestined some events from before creation and then brought them about in time, including the

incarnation and the crucifixion (see his God of the Possible, 45).

27This comes out clearly in comparing various translations of Isaiah 37:26. In the NIV it reads like this:

“Have you not heard? Long ago I ordained it. In days of old I planned it; now I have brought it to

pass, that you [Sennacherib, king of Assyria] have turned fortified cities into piles of stone.” In the ESV

it reads like this: “Have you not heard that I determined it long ago? I planned from days of old what

now I bring to pass, that you should make fortified cities crash into heaps of ruins.” The Hebrew word

that gets translated here as either “ordained” or “determined” is >asah, which means to make or do.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 47

how can human acts be free? And if we are not free, then what happens

to the crucial notion of human responsibility? How could it ever be right

either to praise or blame or to reward or punish anyone?

This is the second set of issues that we must address. We need to

investigate how Scripture represents the relationship between divine

foreordination and human freedom. In other words, we need to think

about how what God has willed relates to what we will. And we need

to determine what Scripture claims about human responsibility.

Open theists are what philosophers call free-will libertarians.28 Freewill

libertarianism involves a claim about what must be true if human

beings are to be truly free and thus capable of genuine responsibility. For

free-will libertarians, true freedom involves more than just my doing

whatever I choose to do. Such freedom of choice, Robert Kane argues,

is just “surface freedom,”29 because someone could manipulate me so

that I always chose to do what that person wanted me to do.30 True freedom,

Kane and other free-will libertarians hold, requires that a person

not only is able to make specific choices but also was able at the time

she chose to choose differently than she actually did. So I have only freely

chosen to eat chocolate ice cream if, as I chose it over rum raisin ice

cream, I could actually have chosen rum raisin instead. Again, you are

only free in choosing to remain sitting right now if you can also choose

to stand up. But if something would stop you from standing up (let’s say

that someone is with you who would hold you down if you tried to stand

up), then even if (rather than fight that person) you choose to remain sitting,

you are not really free. For Kane and other free-will libertarians,

all of this means that we must possess what they call freedom of the

will—that is, freedom to decide what we will want and thus to deter-

48 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

28 In order to forestall some potential confusions, it may be important to note that free-will libertarianism

and political libertarianism are very different. Moreover, as I note two paragraphs hence, not

all free-will libertarians are open theists.

29 See Robert Kane, A Contemporary Introduction to Free Will (New York and Oxford: Oxford

University Press, 2005), 2. As Harry Frankfurt has pointed out, even animals possess some freedom

of choice because “an animal may be free to run in whatever direction it wants” (“Freedom of the

Will and the Concept of a Person,” in Harry G. Frankfurt, The Importance of What We Care About:

Philosophical Essays [Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 1988], 20).

30 E.g., sometimes we see parents luring their children away from doing one thing by offering them

something different that they want even more. As Kane points out, Aldous Huxley’s Brave New World

depicts a world where ordinary citizens are left free to choose as they want but where what they want

is shaped and controlled by the state (see op. cit., 3f.). Kane’s own free-will libertarianism is most fully

developed in his Significance of Free Will (New York and Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1996).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 48

mine for ourselves who we will be and thus what we will choose—in

addition to freedom of choice.31

Now here is the crucial point: for free-will libertarians, we cannot

be held responsible for what we are and do if our wills aren’t free in this

libertarian sense. If the ultimate explanation for my choosing as I do lies

outside me, then I am not really free and I cannot be held responsible

for how I choose. And if I cannot be held responsible, then I cannot

justly be praised or blamed or rewarded or punished for how I choose.

On the level of everyday life, this seems to make sense. We know that

virtually all serial killers were sexually abused as children, and so it

seems proper to place part of the blame for whom they have become on

their abusers and not just on the killers themselves.32 This is what makes

it seem necessary to free-will libertarians that we must have freedom of

the will if God is to be just in holding us responsible for what we do.

And surely we should grant that in Scripture God does hold us responsible

for what we do—just read, for example, Romans 1:18–3:20. So

free-will libertarians conclude that we must possess freedom of the will,

which means that God cannot foreordain what we do.

For open theists, there is an additional rub, given what they think are

the requirements for our possessing libertarian freedom. Open theists

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 49

31 As Kane puts it, freedom of choice is valuable because it allows us to satisfy our desires. When we

have freedom of choice, we can choose to get what we want. But

free will runs deeper than these ordinary freedoms. To see how, suppose we had maximal

freedom to make choices of the kinds just noted to satisfy our desires, yet the choices

we actually made were in fact manipulated by others, by the powers that be. In such a

world we would have a great deal of everyday freedom to do whatever we wanted, yet

our freedom of will would be severely limited. We would be free to act or to choose what

we willed, but we would not have the ultimate power over what it is that we willed.

(Contemporary Introduction, 2)

For free-will libertarians like Kane, we are only truly free if our wants and desires—the things

we choose either to satisfy or not to satisfy—are “up to us,” where the ultimate “sources or origins

of our actions would . . . be ‘in us’ [and not] in something else (such as the decrees of fate, the foreordaining

acts of God, or antecedent causes and laws of nature) outside us and beyond our control”

(6; my emphasis).

32 See Kane’s Contemporary Introduction, 4f. For a fuller account of a real-life case where it seems

that part of the blame for how a person has turned out needs to be placed on others, see Gary

Watson’s retelling of the story of Robert Harris in Perspectives on Moral Responsibility, ed. John

Martin Fischer and Mark Ravizza (Ithaca and London: Cornell, 1993), 131-37.

Only God knows the human heart, and so he alone can fairly assess how much blame each of

us deserves for what we have done. Blame will always rest primarily on the actual perpetrators of a

specific evil—in other words, serial killers are primarily responsible for their crimes—and therefore

the actual perpetrators are primarily blameable and punishable for their own acts (see Deut. 24:16;

2 Kings 14:1-6; Isa. 3:11; Jer. 31:30; Gal. 6:7). This is not to say, however, that the sins of others

cannot have a negative effect on us (see Ex. 20:5; Num. 14:18). Indeed, the acts and omissions of others,

insofar as they contribute to someone’s sin, can make them blameable and punishable, too (see

Ezek. 3:16-21; Matt. 18:6f.).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 49

comprise just a subset of free-will theists because they hold, as some freewill

theists do not, that if God knows what we are going to choose, say,

next week, then what we are going to choose must already be determined

in some way. They maintain that if God knows right now that I am going

to choose chocolate ice cream instead of rum raisin ice cream next week,

then that means that the claim, “Mark is going to choose chocolate ice

cream instead of rum raisin ice cream next week,” is true right now; and

this means that my choosing that way next week is already set. When the

time comes, it may seem as if I am freely choosing to act as I do, but in

fact that cannot be. So open theists insist that God cannot foreknow the

future, if humans are to be free and responsible beings.33

All of this seems like pretty good reasoning, although there are actually

all sorts of possible answers to it.34 Yet I am not interested in arguing

philosophically against either free-will libertarianism or open theism

right now; I want to see what Scripture says. And what we find in

Scripture is this: Scripture holds human beings to be acting responsibly

when God foreknows what they will choose, and even when it says or

implies that God has predestined or foreordained what they will choose.

In addition to some of the verses that I have already cited in the previous

section,35 I am thinking here in particular about what happened

during Peter’s sermon on the day of Pentecost. At one point in it he

declared, “Men of Israel, hear these words: Jesus of Nazareth, a man

attested to you by God with mighty works and wonders and signs that

50 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

33 Strictly speaking, what they claim is that God cannot know our future choices, at least not with

any certainty. They usually concede that God is pretty good at predicting what we are most likely to

do. He could know for certain other truths, as long as his knowledge of those truths did not impinge

on our ability to choose freely.

For a particularly clear statement of the main argument of open theists for this position, see

Boyd’s God of the Possible, 121-23.

34 For those who are willing to get a philosophical workout, see Brian Leftow’s Time and Eternity

(Ithaca and London: Cornell University Press, 1991) and Paul Helm’s Eternal God: A Study of God

Without Time (New York: Oxford University Press, 1988) for these answers.

35 If we, following Jesus and his apostles, take God to be the primary author of Scripture, then we not

only can but must read each part of it in the light of its other parts and seek to make consistent sense

of it as a whole. We must, moreover, allow its clearer and more comprehensive affirmations to determine

our interpretation of its less clear and less comprehensive affirmations. Hebrews 1:3 and

Ephesians 1:11, properly interpreted, are clear and comprehensive affirmations of the fact that nothing

that exists or occurs falls outside God’s ordaining will. And so on the basis of those two texts I

shall assume that God foreknows and foreordains all human acts, including those that are reported

in the passages from Acts and Matthew and John that I am about to discuss. Consequently, the only

issue that I need to address right now is whether human beings are ever held responsible for such acts

in Scripture.

For an excellent summary of what Scripture claims and assumes and implies about itself, see

Grudem, op. cit., 47-138.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 50

God did through him in your midst, as you yourselves know—this Jesus,

delivered up according to the definite plan and foreknowledge of God,

you crucified and killed by the hands of lawless”—that is, wicked and

yet responsible—“men” (Acts 2:22-23). What, then, was the reaction of

the Israelites to Peter’s accusation that they had been party to God’s will

in crucifying the Christ? Did they claim that they were not responsible

just because their actions were foreknown by God and a part of his predetermined

plan—in other words, because Christ’s death, including their

own choice to crucify him at the hands of lawless men, was part of God’s

working all things according to the counsel of his will?36 Did they claim

that they could not be blamed because God knew ahead of time what

they would choose to do? No! Luke tells us, a few verses later, that

“when they heard [that God had made the Jesus whom they had crucified

both Lord and Christ] they were cut to the heart”—in other words,

they acknowledged the depth of their wrongdoing regarding God’s

Christ—“and said to Peter and the rest of the apostles, ‘Brothers, what

shall we do?’ And Peter said to them, ‘Repent and be baptized every one

of you in the name of Jesus Christ for the forgiveness of your sins’”

(2:37-38a). We only need to ask forgiveness for what we are responsible

for.37 So divine foreknowledge and human responsibility are taken

to be compatible in Scripture.

Next, let us consider our Lord’s words at the Last Supper. As his disciples

participated with him in his final Passover feast, Jesus told them

that one of them would betray him. This made them very sorrowful, and

they began to say to him “one after another, ‘Is it I, Lord?’” Jesus

answered like this: “He who has dipped his hand in the dish with me

will betray me. The Son of Man goes as it is written”—that is, as it was

previously predicted—“of him, but woe to that man by whom the Son

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 51

36The phrase “delivered up according to the definite plan and foreknowledge of God”—or, as the NIV

translates it, “handed over to you by God’s set purpose and foreknowledge”—suggests that Judas’s

betrayal of Jesus, Caiaphas’s willingness to sacrifice Jesus for the sake of the Jewish people (see John

18:14 with 11:45-50), and Pilate’s cowardice about standing up to the Jews after they handed Jesus over

to him (see John 18:28–19:16) were all specific parts of God’s predetermined plan. Many years before,

Sennacherib had been an unwitting instrument of God’s greater purposes, as we are told in Isaiah 10:6f.:

“Against a godless nation I send him, and against the people of my wrath I command him, . . . to tread

them down like the mire of the streets. But he does not so intend, and his heart does not so think; but

it is in his heart to destroy.” And so it seems reasonable to conclude, against the kinds of arguments that

I cite by open theists in footnotes 38 and 39, that these three men (along with Herod and others) spoke

and acted exactly as God had ordained (see, e.g., John 11:51-53).

37While I might say, after it has happened, “Sorry!” I don’t really need to ask your forgiveness for my

tripping and bumping into you unless my tripping was the result of something like my carelessness.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 51

of Man is betrayed! It would have been better for that man if he had not

been born” (Matt. 26:22-24). Does this sound as if the disciple who was

to betray Jesus was not to be blamed for what he was about to do? Of

course not! Acts 1:18 labels Judas’s choice to betray Jesus an act of

wickedness; and the phrase “it would have been better for that man if

he had not been born” is meant to convey that he is going to face very

fearful judgment for what he has done. Moreover, we are told at John

6:64 that “Jesus knew from the beginning . . . who it was who would

betray him.” Yet Judas was responsible for the wickedness he chose to

do, as he himself recognized (see Matt. 27:4).38

Finally, consider Acts 4:24-28, where the believers are praying after

Peter and John had been released from custody after they had been

arrested for proclaiming the gospel. You may remember that prayer:

“Sovereign Lord, who made the heaven and the earth and the sea

and everything in them, who through the mouth of our father David,

your servant, said by the Holy Spirit,

‘Why did the Gentiles rage,

and the peoples plot in vain?

52 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

38 Sanders does not comment on these passages from Matthew and John. Boyd provides a fairly

lengthy interpretation of John 6:64 and other passages in that gospel in an attempt to show (1) that

John 6:64 does not imply that Jesus knew from eternity that Judas would betray him; (2) that John

17:12 does not provide support for the position that “Judas was damned from the beginning of time”;

and (3) that, while Judas was the one who fulfilled Scripture by betraying Jesus, he did not have to

be the one who fulfilled that role (see 37-39).

If we grant from passages such as Isaiah 46:10-11 that God has exhaustive foreknowledge of

all future events, including all future human choices, then there is no reason why we should not read

John 6:64 in the traditional way, since it is certainly possible that the incarnate Jesus, as God the Son,

could and did know this during his incarnation, just as he predicted in Matthew 26:33-35 that before

the cock would crow Peter would deny him three times. Boyd’s second and third points will not be

granted by those who interpret passages such as Hebrews 1:3 and Ephesians 1:11 as I do.

The implausibility of Boyd’s explanation of Jesus’ prediction that Peter would deny him three

times before the cock would crow in Matthew 26:33-35 shows how weak some of the arguments of

the open theists are. Boyd argues that we can explain such a prediction “simply by supposing that

the person’s character, combined with the Lord’s perfect knowledge of all future variables, makes the

person’s future behavior certain” (35). He then says:

Contrary to the assumption of many, we do not need to believe that the future is exhaustively

settled to explain this prediction. We only need to believe that God the Father knew

and revealed to Jesus one very predictable aspect of Peter’s character. Anyone who knew

Peter’s character perfectly could have predicted that under certain highly pressured circumstances

(that God could easily orchestrate), he would act just the way he did. (35)

Yet in order for Jesus to risk making a prediction that Peter would deny him three times before

dawn (remember: in the Old Testament, a prophet was discredited as God’s spokesman if all of his

predictions did not come true [see Deut. 18:21f.]), the circumstances that God would have had to

orchestrate would have included his ensuring that Peter would be confronted with questions about

his relationship with Jesus exactly three times. And how could God ensure this without at least potentially

overriding the freedom of the questioners to ensure that result?

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 52

The kings of the earth set themselves,

and the rulers were gathered together,

against the Lord and against his Anointed’—

for truly in this city there were gathered together against your holy

servant Jesus, whom you anointed, both Herod and Pontius Pilate,

along with the Gentiles and the peoples of Israel, to do whatever

your hand and your plan had predestined to take place.”

Plotting is something that people choose to do, and setting oneself

against someone is another thing that a human being chooses either to

do or not to do. Here Herod and Pontius Pilate and the Gentiles and the

Israelites were all gathered together in setting themselves against God

and Christ—and there really is no doubt that they are all being blamed

for what they had chosen to do; in other words, they are being held

responsible for the choices they made, even though what they have plotted

and set themselves to do is what God’s hand and his plan had predestined

would take place.39 Thus it seems that, in Scripture, God’s

having foreordained that some human choices will be made is not

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 53

39 In general, open theists like Boyd and Sanders make a great effort to show how passages like this

one and the one from Acts 2 can take an “open” interpretation and thus do not support the sorts of

claims that I am making. It is surprising, therefore, how little attention open theists pay to these two

passages. Boyd simply declares that while

Scripture portrays the crucifixion as a predestined event, it never suggests that the individuals

who participated in this event were predestined to do so or foreknown as doing

so. It was certain that Jesus would be crucified, but it was not certain from eternity that

Pilot [sic], Herod, or Caiaphas would play the roles they played in the crucifixion. (God

of the Possible, 45; my emphasis)

These are mere assertions that, moreover, seem not to acknowledge and grapple with the most

natural interpretation of the text. For this claim, “truly in this city there were gathered together against

your holy servant Jesus . . . both Herod and Pontius Pilate, along with the Gentiles and the peoples

of Israel, to do whatever your hand and your plan had predestined to take place,” is most naturally

interpreted as involving the sovereign God of the universe using those who were gathered against Jesus

as instruments to carry out his will. This follows both from the fact that the natural subject of the

final “to do” clause is Herod and Pontius Pilate and the Gentiles and Israelites and in the light of passages

such as Hebrews 1:3 and Ephesians 1:11.

Sanders also treats these two passages much too briefly, saying that “It was God’s definite purpose

. . . to deliver the Son into the hands of those who had a long track record of resisting God’s work”

(op. cit., 103). By this he seems to acknowledge that God intended to use Herod and Pilate and the

Gentile and Jewish peoples as the instruments for carrying out his will. But he then quotes Luke 7:30—

“the Pharisees and the lawyers rejected the purpose of God for themselves”—as proof that human

beings can resist the divine will. Yet here we may reply that the Pharisees and lawyers were resisting

God’s revealed will and that neither they nor anyone else can resist his secret will. We see this distinction

at work in, e.g., 1 Samuel 2:12-25, where Eli’s sons were treating God’s revealed will regarding

sacrifice with contempt, but when Eli warned them about God’s judgment for their evil dealings, we

are told that “they would not listen to the voice of their father”—who was, of course, proclaiming

God’s revealed will to them—“for it was the will of the LORD to put them to death” (v. 25).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 53

incompatible with holding those human beings responsible for those

choices.

So according to the Scriptures, no matter what free-will libertarians

and open theists say, neither God’s foreknowledge nor his foreordination

of all things, including all human choices and acts, preclude human

responsibility.

Choosing and Willing

Scripture emphasizes that we possess what free-will libertarians call freedom

of choice. This comes out in the many passages where our choices

and their consequences are stressed, passages such as Deuteronomy

30:19, “I call heaven and earth to witness against you today, that I have

set before you life and death, blessing and curse. Therefore choose life,

that you and your offspring may live”; and Joshua 24:14f., “Now therefore

fear the LORD and serve him in sincerity and in faithfulness. Put

away the gods that your fathers served beyond the River and in Egypt,

and serve the LORD. And if it is evil in your eyes to serve the LORD,

choose this day whom you will serve.” Then there is Proverbs 1:29,

“Because they hated knowledge and did not choose the fear of the LORD,

. . . therefore they shall eat the fruit of their way, and have their fill of

their own devices”; and Proverbs 3:31, “Do not envy a man of violence

and do not choose any of his ways.” Again, we have Proverbs 16:16,

“How much better to get wisdom than gold! To get understanding is to

be chosen rather than silver”; and Isaiah 56:4f.:

For thus says the LORD:

“To the eunuchs who keep my Sabbaths,

who choose the things that please me

and hold fast my covenant,

I will give in my house and within my walls

a monument and a name

better than sons and daughters;

I will give them an everlasting name

that shall not be cut off.”

Finally, there is Luke 10:41f., “But the Lord answered her, ‘Martha,

Martha, you are anxious and troubled about many things, but one thing

54 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 54

is necessary. Mary has chosen the good portion, which will not be taken

away from her.’”

Many other passages do not mention choice explicitly but presuppose

our freedom to choose, such as the command at Leviticus 19:4,

“Do not turn to idols or make for yourselves any gods of cast metal: I

am the LORD your God”; and the four times the Israelites are exhorted

in the first chapter of Joshua to be strong and courageous as they cross

the river Jordan to take possession of the Promised Land. There are

exhortations such as those found in Psalm 85:8, “Let me hear what God

the LORD will speak, for he will speak peace to his people, to his saints;

but let them not turn back to folly”; and Proverbs 4:20, 22-24, 26f.,

My son, be attentive to my words;

incline your ear to my sayings. . . .

For they are life to those who find them,

and healing to all their flesh.

Keep your heart with all vigilance,

for from it flow the springs of life.

Put away from you crooked speech,

and put devious talk far from you. . . .

Ponder the path of your feet;

then all your ways will be sure.

Do not swerve to the right or to the left;

turn your foot away from evil.

Then there are the counsels and exhortations for Christians to walk in

the light (see John 12:35f. and 1 John 1:5-7) and by the Spirit (Gal. 5:16-

25; 1 Thess. 2:12; 4:1-7), because this is what Christ has set us free to do

(see Gal. 5:1, 13; cf. Eph. 2:10). There are also warnings such as those

found at Proverbs 3:7, “Be not wise in your own eyes; fear the LORD, and

turn away from evil”; and Proverbs 4:14f.: “Do not enter the path of the

wicked, and do not walk in the way of the evil. Avoid it; do not go on it;

turn away from it and pass on”; and Ephesians 5:3-21 and Hebrews 2:1-

3, 4:11, and 12:25, as well as the combination of warnings and promises

found in Ezekiel 3:16-21 and 18:19-32. At Ezekiel 33:11, God pleads

with the Israelites to turn back from their evil ways so that they may live.

In Acts 14:15-17, Paul and Barnabas plead with the people of Lystra not

to perform the blasphemy of offering sacrifice to them. In Acts 26, Paul

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 55

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 55

tells King Agrippa of his conversion and how God has sent him to the

Gentiles “to open their eyes, so that they may turn from darkness to light

and from the power of Satan to God, that they may receive forgiveness

of sins and a place among those who are sanctified by faith in [Christ]”

(v. 18). At 2 Timothy 3:5 and Titus 3:9, Paul commands his readers to

avoid specific sorts of people and controversies.

So our freedom to choose, along with our responsibility, is affirmed

throughout Scripture. In fact, our ability to listen and to choose and to

act in the light of instruction and teaching and counseling is part of what

differentiates us from the beasts: “I will instruct you and teach you in

the way you should go; I will counsel you with my eye upon you. Be not

like a horse or a mule, without understanding, which must be curbed

with bit and bridle, or it will not stay near you” (Ps. 32:8f.).

But does Scripture corroborate the claim of free-will libertarians

that humans are responsible for their choices and their acts because they

possess freedom of the will? In other words, does Scripture endorse

Kane’s claim that true freedom—the freedom really worth having, without

which (he claims) we are not truly responsible nor truly deserving

of praise or blame or reward or punishment—requires us to be free in

the sense that we are able to choose not merely which of our wants and

desires we will satisfy but are also able to choose what we will want and

desire and thus are the ultimate sources or origins of our actions? Does

Scripture represent the final shaping of our lives as right now “up to us”

and “in us” rather than up to or in something else?

It does not. Indeed, it emphatically denies that we now possess the

freedom to shape ourselves in the most fundamentally important way—

that is, with regard to whether we will remain slaves to sin or become

bondservants to righteousness (see Rom. 6:16-19; 2 Pet. 2:19). Scripture

everywhere asserts or assumes that in this post-fall world each and every

one of us is by nature spiritually dead (see Eph. 2:1-3; Col. 2:13) and

thus helpless to determine for ourselves at the deepest and most crucial

level of our existence who we will be.40 As Paul says, “the sinful mind”—

that is, the mind that is spiritually dead and thus enslaved to sin—“is

56 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

40 Peter T. O’Brien says, in commenting on Ephesians 2:1, “here [Paul] employs the adjective ‘dead’

figuratively to describe the state of being lost or under the dominion of death. . . . It is sometimes

called spiritual death and denotes a state of alienation or separation from God” (The Letter to the

Ephesians [Grand Rapids, Mich.: Eerdmans, 1999]), loc. cit.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 56

hostile to God. It does not submit to God’s law, nor can it do so” (Rom.

8:7, NIV). To be spiritually dead means to lack the power to choose godliness

and thus escape the corruption that is in the world because of sinful

desire (see 2 Pet. 1:3f.). Yet the spiritually dead are not

inactive—indeed, their sinful natures control and even drive them (see

Rom. 8:8, NIV), for their minds are set on and enslaved to what that

nature desires (see Rom. 8:5, NIV).41 In this state, as Peter O’Brien

observes, we “cannot respond to life’s decisions neutrally,” for we “are

deeply affected by evil, determining influences” that “may be described

in terms of the environment (‘the age of this world’), a supernaturally

powerful opponent (‘the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that is

now at work among those who are disobedient’ [cf. John 8:44]), and an

inner inclination towards evil (‘the flesh’).”42

Scripture—and especially the New Testament—drives home the fact

that each and every one of us is either still dominated by sin—as Jesus

said, “Truly, truly, I say to you, everyone who commits sin is a slave to

sin” (John 8:34)—or has been set free by God to live a life of righteousness—“

if the Son sets you free, you will be free indeed” (John 8:36;

cf. 2 Cor. 3:17). Either we are for the God who is the Father of Jesus

Christ or we are against him (see Mark 9:40); there is no middle state

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 57

41 Peter says that they are filled with “the lustful desires of sinful human nature” (2 Pet. 2:18, NIV),

which John enumerates as “the cravings of sinful man, the lust of his eyes and the boasting of what

he has and does” (1 John 2:16, NIV).

It may seem paradoxical that someone can be both spiritually dead and active, but think of

sociopathic killers. Serial killers are not infrequently described by those who deal with them as seeming

to have something dead within them and yet they deploy all their energies to do their horrors.

Indeed, it is what is dead within them, that allows and even drives them to do what they do. For their

consciences are dead, which makes them all the more dangerous because they no longer possess that

inner monitor which should stop them from even contemplating doing such horrible deeds. More

choices open up before them precisely because they feel so little compunction to do only what is right.

In fact, Jude gives us a picture of how the spiritually dead can be very active in their wrongdoing when

he condemns certain people who had crept into the church, whom he describes as blaspheming what

they do not understand and being destroyed “by all that they, like unreasoning animals, understand

instinctively” (10). He calls these people “blemishes on your love feasts, as they feast with you without

fear, looking after themselves; . . . fruitless trees in late autumn, twice dead, uprooted; wild waves

of the sea, casting up the foam of their own shame; wandering stars” (12f.). Such people are freer

than true Christians to do bad things. Likewise, Isaiah describes Sodom and Gomorrah in a way

where it is clear that their inhabitants were dead to any feeling of shame regarding what they were

doing (see Isa. 3:9). It is as human beings become spiritually blind, as they become alienated from

God’s life, as their hearts harden, and as they become callous that they then have nothing to stop them

from giving themselves up to all kinds of sensuality and may even become “greedy to practice every

kind of impurity” (Eph. 5:17-19).

42 This is O’Brien’s summarizing comment on Paul’s claims in Ephesians 2:1-3 (see 163f.). As O’Brien

points out, Paul’s claims are consistent with what we find elsewhere in the New Testament; see, e.g.,

James 3:15 and 1 John 2:15-17 and 3:7-10.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 57

(see Tit. 1:15f.), for, to put it somewhat differently, each of us is either

a creature of the light or a creature of darkness (see 2 Cor. 6:14; 1 John

1:5f.).43 Every human being in this post-fall world starts out as a slave

to sin (see Rom. 6:17; Eph. 2:3f.; Col. 2:7), for this is our inescapable

legacy from Adam (see Rom. 5:12, 19). Adam’s disobedience has made

us all sons and daughters of disobedience (see Rom. 5:19 with Eph. 2:2).

As God himself said when looking down upon human beings after the

flood, every inclination of the unredeemed human heart is ra> from childhood

(see Gen. 8:21). So David declares, and Paul reiterates:

The fool says in his heart, “There is no God.”

They are corrupt, they do abominable deeds,

there is none who does good.

The LORD looks down from heaven on the children of man,

to see if there are any who understand,

who seek after God.

They have all turned aside; together they have become corrupt;

there is none who does good,

not even one. (Ps. 14:1-3; cf. Rom. 3:9-20)

“The wicked”—that is, what each of us is naturally, in our “flesh,” as

long as we have not been spiritually reborn of God’s Spirit (see John 3:1-

8 with Jer. 25:30f. and Rom. 7:5 and 8:1-14)—“are estranged from the

womb; they go astray from birth, speaking lies” (Ps. 58:3). We are all

sinful from the moment we are conceived and then we are birthed as

iniquitous; this is the truth that adulterous, murderous King David came

to realize in his “inner parts” (Ps. 51:5f., NIV). The whole world lies

under the evil one’s control (see 1 John 5:19, NIV; cf. 2 Cor. 4:4; Eph.

2:2) and would remain so forever if it were not for the rich—indeed,

immeasurable—grace and mercy of God in Christ (see Eph. 2:1-10).

Consequently, it is neither “up to us” nor is it “in us” to choose

whether we will remain slaves to sin or become bondservants to righteousness.

As it was for the Israelites who were born enslaved under

58 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

43 John 12:46, Acts 26:18, Ephesians 5:8, and 1 Peter 2:9 all assume that we are all at first creatures

of darkness who, if there is to be any hope for us, must be delivered from that domain and transferred

to the kingdom of light (see Col. 1:13). 2 Corinthians 6:14f. assumes that there are only two

classes of human beings, variously described as the righteous and the unrighteous or wicked (the

Greek word is anomia, which means “lawlessness” and hence “unrighteousness” or “wickedness”),

or those of the light and those of darkness, or those in Christ and those of Satan.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 58

Pharaoh, divine deliverance is our only hope (see Eph. 2:1-10 and Col.

2:13-15 with Ex. 13:3). As Jesus told Nicodemus, we must be born again

of God’s Spirit if we are to see his kingdom (see John 3:1-8). But such a

birth comes “not of natural descent, nor of human decision or a husband’s

will”; we must be “born of God” (John 1:13, NIV). “No one can

come to me,” Jesus said to the grumbling Jews, “unless the Father who

sent me draws him” (John 6:44); “no one can come to me,” he reiterated

to his disciples moments later, “unless the Father enables him”

(6:65, NIV). God must put his Spirit within us and thus cause us—yes,

cause us44—to walk in his righteousness (see Ezek. 36:27). “By his own

choice,” James declares to his Christian brothers and sisters, “he gave

birth to us by the message of the truth” (James 1:18, New Jerusalem

Bible). The Spirit runs along the pathway of God’s holy Word (see John

6:63), but our hearts will open to receive him as the supernatural source

of spiritual life only if God enables us to hear the word of the gospel with

faith (see Gal. 3:2 with Eph. 2:8-10 and Acts 16:14). And so it is with

all of us as it was with the Gentiles in Antioch of Pisidia: as we hear the

gospel preached, just as many of us as God has ordained to eternal life

will believe (see Acts 13:48 with Rom. 10:14-17).45

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 59

44 In the ESV, Ezekiel 36:27 reads: “And I will put my Spirit within you, and cause you to walk in my

statutes and be careful to obey my rules.” The Hebrew for “cause” is >asah, which, as we have already

seen, means to do or make. Most English versions translate it here as “cause”; the NIV’s atypical “move”

seems much too weak because someone can move someone else to do something without actually causing

the person to act in that way. Rendering >asah as “cause” harmonizes with the fact that Scripture

always represents us as passive in the process of spiritual rebirth. Regeneration—which is the technical

term, when it is used in its theologically narrower sense, for our being born again—is entirely God’s work.

45 The Greek word that is translated as “appointed” in the ESV for Acts 13:48 is tassø, which can be

translated as appoint or order or ordain. Thus, the RSV reads: “And when the Gentiles heard this,

they were glad and glorified the word of God; and as many as were ordained to eternal life believed.”

The primacy of God in the entire process of our salvation is emphasized by Scripture’s assumption

that he chooses those who come to faith. See, e.g., 1 Thessalonians 1:4f.—“we know, brothers

loved by God, that he has chosen you, because our gospel came to you not only in word, but also in

power and in the Holy Spirit and with full conviction”—and 2 Thessalonians 2:13—“But we ought

always to give thanks to God for you, brothers beloved by the Lord, because God chose you as the

firstfruits to be saved, through sanctification by the Spirit and belief in the truth”—as well as Psalm

65:4—“Blessed is the one you choose and bring near, to dwell in your courts!”

F. F. Bruce emphasizes God’s sovereignty in this process in the way that he translates Ephesians

1:11—“It was in Christ, too, that we were claimed by God as his portion, having been foreordained

according to the purpose of him who works all things according to the counsel of his will.” He comments:

The verb translated “we were claimed . . . as his portion” has been rendered more freely

in a number of recent versions. . . . But we are dealing with a passive form of the verb

which means “appoint by lot,” “allot,” “assign,” and the passive sense should be brought

out unless there is good reason to the contrary. The reason for the rendering “we were

claimed by God as his portion” (rather than “we were assigned our portion”) is that it

is in keeping with OT precedent [see, e.g., Deut. 32:8f.]. . . . [H]ere, believers in Christ

are God’s chosen people, claimed by him as his portion or heritage. . . .

The idea of the divine foreordination is repeated from verse 5. There God is said to

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 59

True freedom, then, is ours only if God has brought us to spiritual

life by birth through his Spirit. It is only then that we are set free in a

way that makes us able to choose to be bondservants to righteousness

(see Rom. 6; 8:2-8; Gal. 5:13; 1 Pet. 2:16). Perhaps it is not too much

to say that it is only after God has regenerated us that we possess true

freedom of the will, for it is only after our spiritual rebirth that we are

able through the power of God’s Spirit living within us to choose anything

other than sin. Yet, contrary to what free-will libertarians say, even

before this, even while we were still unable to help ourselves and still

hapless slaves to sin, we were properly liable to punishment (see Eph.

5:6; Col. 3:5-10).46 Indeed, as Paul puts it in Ephesians 2:3, as long as

we are unregenerate and precisely because we are unregenerate, we are

“by nature children of wrath.” According to Scripture, then, neither

praise nor blame nor reward nor punishment depend on our possessing

freedom of the will, as free-will libertarians define it.

Joseph’s Story

How can this be? The reasoning of free-will libertarians seems quite plausible:

the kind of freedom that we must possess if we are to be held

responsible and thus liable to praise or blame and reward or punishment

must involve our ability to shape ourselves at the most fundamental level

of our personalities—the level of choosing who we will be by being able

to choose what our wants and desires are. For if we possess no more than

the ability to choose which of our wants and desires we will satisfy, then

it seems that the ultimate responsibility for who we are depends on God

60 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

have foreordained his people “according to the good pleasure of his will”; here this is

said to be part of his eternal governance of the universe, for he “works all things according

to the counsel of his will.” His will may be disobeyed, but his ultimate purpose cannot

be frustrated, for he overrules the disobedience of his creatures in such a way that it

subserves his purpose. (F. F. Bruce, The Epistles to the Colossians, to Philemon, and to

the Ephesians [Grand Rapids, Mich.: Eerdmans, 1984], 262-64)

The picture here is that the sovereign Lord of all the universe just points to those whom he

wishes to save and says, “I will take those.” Of course, Bruce’s distinction between God’s will and

his ultimate purpose is the same distinction that Reformed theology makes between God’s revealed

and secret wills (see n. 18).

46 “Properly” because we are in this state subject to God’s wrath—and the Judge of all the earth will

always do what is just and right (see Gen. 18:25). As O’Brien notes:

The ‘wrath’ in view [in Eph. 2:3] is God’s holy anger against sin and the judgment that

results (cf. Eph. 5:6; Col. 3:5-6). It is neither an impersonal process of cause and effect,

nor God’s vindictive anger, nor unbridled and unrighteous revenge, nor an outburst of

passion. Wrath describes neither some autonomous entity alongside God, nor some principle

of retribution that is not to be associated closely with his personality. (163)

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 60

or fate or physical or psychological necessity or whatever it is that has

ultimately determined what are our wants and desires.47

In fact, however, the biblical position seems clearly to be both that

God has ordained everything that happens in our world of time and

space and that it is not now “up to us” nor is it “in us” to choose

whether we will remain slaves to sin or become bondservants to righteousness.

48 Those who love evil hate good (see Mic. 3:2; Ps. 52:3; cf.

Ps. 45:7; 101). Light can have no fellowship with darkness (see 2 Cor.

6:14). No one can serve two masters; and so we are either inclined to

sin or to righteousness (see Matt. 6:19-24). Yet, as we have seen, to

which of these two we are inclined is not ultimately “up to us.” And yet

Scripture maintains that we still choose freely and responsibly and thus

remain properly punishable for our own wrongdoing.

Short of the accounts of our Lord’s crucifixion in Acts that we examined

earlier, Genesis provides us with Scripture’s clearest example of

this.49 This is the point of the story of Joseph, who was born as the first

of the two sons of Jacob’s beloved wife Rachel, who then died while giving

birth to her second son, Benjamin. All told, Jacob had twelve sons,

six by his less-loved wife, Leah, two by Rachel, two by Rachel’s maid-

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 61

47 While this reasoning initially seems quite plausible, it is actually wrong. For it assumes that our

wants and desires are all that we consider in making our choices, in which case it follows that the

range of our choices would be restricted by the range of our wants and desires. Consequently, if God

or fate or physical or psychological factors (or whatever) determine the range of our wants and desires,

then God or fate or physical or psychological factors (or whatever) indirectly yet inevitably determine

the range of our choices. Scripture, however, both assumes and asserts that we are to take more than

our wants and desires into consideration in making our choices—namely, we are to take God and his

law into consideration, with the understanding that if his law runs against our wants and desires, then

we are to choose to follow his law rather than satisfy our wants and desires. And, according to

Scripture, every human being knows this (see, e.g., Rom. 1:18–2:16). We do not need libertarian freedom

of the will, then, in order to be responsible. All we need is freedom of choice plus an awareness

that sometimes God is commanding us to follow his law rather than satisfy our wants and desires.

48 In other words, according to Scripture, each one of us possesses a primary inclination either to sin

or to righteousness. This primary inclination determines our wants and desires. So there is no such

thing as freedom of the will at the most fundamental level of human being. As our Lord said, each

of us is either for him or against him (see Luke 11:14-28). In the spiritual realm, as should be clear

from our examination of Ephesians 2:1-3, neutrality is impossible.

With some careful thinking, we can see why there can be no such thing as freedom of the will at

the most fundamental level of human being. Ultimately, even though we should be motivated to make

our choices in terms of God’s law, our actual motivation to make a choice between any two possibilities—

let’s designate them possibility A and possibility B—is that either A or B is more consistent with

our primary inclination. (If by God’s regenerating grace my primary inclination is to righteousness, then

I will in fact be motivated by what should motivate me.) Consequently, if we were to have no primary

inclination, then we would not be moved to make any choices. Moreover, it is impossible to choose our

primary inclination because we have nothing more primary than it to motivate that choice.

49 From here through the end of my next section, I am relying somewhat on what I have already said

in my earlier piece, “True Freedom,” in Beyond the Bounds, 88-100. That piece deals explicitly with

some of the objections that open theists would make to my interpretation of Joseph’s story.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 61

servant, Bilhah, and two by Leah’s maidservant, Zilpah. If any family

has ever been destined to have family rivalries, it was this one.

Joseph’s story really starts in Genesis 37, where we read of him

being his father’s pet. Jacob foolishly lavished things on Joseph, like a

many-colored robe. This led Joseph’s brothers to realize that their father

loved Joseph more than he loved them and so, we are told, “they hated

him and could not speak peacefully to him” (37:4). To make matters

worse, when Joseph was seventeen he had two dreams predicting that

he would rule over his entire family, and he foolishly told his brothers

about them.

These things prompted Joseph’s brothers to plot to kill him, but

then, just because the opportunity arose, they sold him into slavery

instead. He wound up in Egypt. There he went through a series of ups

and downs, including being imprisoned for two years on the false

charge that he had tried to seduce his master’s wife. Yet finally he rose

to become Pharaoh’s second-in-command. And then Jacob sent Joseph’s

brothers to Egypt to buy food because there was a famine in Canaan.

Of course, Joseph recognized them, but he didn’t tell them who he was.

Instead, he forced them to return home to fetch his full brother,

Benjamin, while he held Simeon in prison until they returned. He then

tested them to see how they would react to the idea of his keeping

Benjamin as his servant and finally, as he watched their grief-stricken

reactions to that possibility, he revealed to them who he was.

And here is the crucial point: when he finally revealed to his brothers

who he was, he did not deny that it was their sinful actions of many

years before that accounted for his being in Egypt. At Genesis 45:4, we

find him saying, “Come near to me, please. . . . I am your brother,

Joseph, whom you sold into Egypt.” Yet he tries to keep them from getting

too dismayed or fearful upon seeing him again in these circumstances—

where he really is ruling over them, just as he dreamed—by

stating that what they did was ultimately God’s doing: “And now do not

be distressed or angry with yourselves because you sold me here, for

God sent me before you to preserve life” (45:5). God sent Joseph to

Egypt through his brothers selling him into slavery. Joseph then reiterates,

without again mentioning his brothers’ part in it, that God sent him

to Egypt: “God sent me ahead of you to preserve for you a remnant on

earth and to save your lives by a great deliverance” (45:7, NIV). Then he

62 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 62

finally concludes, “So it was not you who sent me here, but God” (45:8).

Reading the whole story carefully clarifies that Joseph appeals to God’s

will as the final explanation of everything that happened to him, and

ultimately God gets the credit for all the good that resulted.

Of course, this is not to deny Joseph’s brothers’ part in the whole

story, nor the evil of what they did, nor their responsibility, nor their

guilt. All of that, it is clear, Scripture considers compatible with the claim

that God ordained their choosing to do what they did. Indeed, that very

point is made at the very end of the story, in the last few lines of Genesis.

After Jacob died, Joseph’s brothers, still haunted by what they themselves

call “all the evil that we did to him” (50:15), made up a story and

sent it by messenger to Joseph, no doubt because they were afraid to

show their faces, for fear he would now exact vengeance on them. Their

story went: “Dad commanded us right before he died to tell you, ‘Please

forgive your brothers for their transgression and their sin against you,

because they did in fact do evil to you.’ So please forgive us for what

we’ve done” (see 50:15-17). So how did Joseph respond when he finally

saw them face to face? He said, “Do not fear, for am I in the place of

God? As for you, you meant evil against me, but God meant it for good,

to bring it about that many people should be kept alive, as they are

today” (50:19-20).

Now understanding the construction of this claim—“As for you,

you meant evil against me, but God meant it for good”—is absolutely

crucial if we are to understand the relationship between God’s will and

our wills, between God’s ordaining that someone will do some evil act

and some human being’s actually doing it. The word for “evil” here is,

once again, the Hebrew word ra>. Ra> is in the feminine singular case. In

languages like Hebrew and Greek, the case of nouns, pronouns, and

adjectives indicates the grammatical relations among various words.

And the “it” in this claim—“God meant it for good”—is also in the feminine

singular. So by the rules of grammar, “it” clearly takes as its

antecedent the previous ra>. In other words, the pronoun “it” refers to

the noun “evil,” just like “it” would refer to the word “book” if I were

to say, “Would you please bring me my book? It is on the table.” But,

then, Joseph’s claim is most accurately and clearly translated (with a little

expansion to make it clear what is being talked about) like this: “As

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 63

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 63

for you, my brothers, in selling me into slavery you meant evil against

me, but God meant that evil event for good.”

In other words, Joseph here referred to just one specific event,

namely, his brothers selling him to the Ishmaelites, who then took him

to Egypt. Yet he explained the occurrence of that one event in two different

ways: his brothers intended to do him harm by selling him into

slavery—remember, they hated him and even were plotting to kill him—

even as God intended that sale for Joseph’s and many others’ (including

his brothers’) good. In the light of what we have concluded thus far, this

amounts to God’s having ordained Joseph’s brothers’ evil willing, but as

part of a greater good.

Dual explanations like this are scattered throughout the Scriptures.

There is one at the very beginning of the book of Job, right after God

put Job in Satan’s gunsights and then gave Satan permission to do anything

other than lay a hand directly on Job himself. So Satan sent the

Sabeans to steal Job’s oxen and donkeys and kill their herdsmen, and

then caused lightning to electrocute Job’s sheep and the servants attending

them, and then sent the Chaldeans to raid his camels and slaughter

their keepers, and then caused a great wind that killed all of his children.

When Job learned of all of these evils, he ripped his clothes, shaved his

head, “and fell on the ground and worshiped,” saying, “Naked came

I from my mother’s womb, and naked shall I return. The LORD gave, and

the LORD has taken away; blessed be the name of the LORD” (1:20f.).

In other words, Job took God’s will to be the ultimate explanation of all

of this evil. And the author of the book of Job then makes sure that we

understand that this is right, for he adds, “In all this Job did not sin or

charge God with wrong” (1:22). In other words, it was not sinful or

wrong for Job to claim that God had a sovereign, ordaining hand in

these evils. God did not do them; Satan did. But the evils that Satan did,

he did only with God’s permission, which the Scriptures themselves

imply amounts to God’s foreordination. Satan did these things to harm

Job, but God ordained them for his own glory and ultimately for Job’s

good.

The story of Paul’s shipwreck in Acts 27 involves the same sort of

dual explanation. In verses 22-25, God promised categorically through

Paul that no one on the ship was going to be lost. Yet later when some

of the sailors were secretly trying to jump ship, Paul declared to his cen-

64 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 64

turion guard and his soldiers, “Unless these [sailors] stay in the ship, you

cannot be saved” (see vv. 30-32). This led the soldiers to act in a way

that kept the sailors aboard. And thus everyone was saved, as God had

ordained. Since God had previously promised that no one would be lost,

we can conclude that the soldiers’ acting to keep the sailors on board

was among the events that God had foreordained.

Again, in the book of Jonah we are first told that, at his urging, the

sailors on Jonah’s ship hurled him into the sea (see 1:14f.) and then,

when he is in the belly of the great fish, Jonah says to God, “you cast

me into the deep” (2:3). In addition, verses like Proverbs 21:1—“The

king’s heart is a stream of water in the hand of the LORD; he turns it

wherever he will”—clarify that, even with kings, whose wills are most

sovereign on earth, what they will is what God wills them to will

because God governs their hearts. One striking instance of this involves

King Saul’s suicide, which the Chronicler describes as a matter of God’s

having put Saul to death for his breach of faith in not obeying God’s

command to him through Samuel and in Saul’s having consulted with

a medium at Endor (see 1 Chron. 10:1-14 with 1 Sam. 10:8, 13:7-14,

and 28:1-19).50

So it seems that we can appropriately conclude, with the great theologian

Charles Hodge, that “[w]hat is true of the history of Joseph, is

true of all history.”51 All of history is composed of this sort of dual explanation:

God foreordains what humans choose. He is never absent or

inactive when human beings hurt each other or themselves. In the person

of his Son, he is always in our midst, as the one who holds each and

every aspect of creation, including all of its evil aspects, in his hands so

that he may carry it to where it accomplishes exactly what he wants.

Scripture includes verses that, at least on a first reading, and perhaps

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 65

50The Chronicler’s account goes like this: Saul had been wounded by the Philistine archers and, fearing

that he would be abused by them if he fell into their hands, he asked his armor-bearer to kill

him. But his armor-bearer refused. So Saul took his own sword and killed himself by falling on it.

So when the Chronicler observes, in verse 14, that “the LORD put [Saul] to death,” what he means

is that God did this through moving Saul to choose, voluntarily and no doubt responsibly, to end

his own life.

We are told that Saul’s armor-bearer refused to kill him because “he feared greatly” (1 Chron.

10:4). I think the most plausible interpretation of those words is that Saul’s armor-bearer understood

that he would be held responsible if he chose to carry out Saul’s request. So the whole account seems to

be saturated with human choice and responsibility, yet all of it exercised according to God’s secret will.

51 Charles Hodge, Systematic Theology, 3 vols. (Grand Rapids, Mich.: Eerdmans, 1986 [first published

in 1871]), 1:544.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 65

even on a second or third reading, may seem to imply something else.52

But as we have already seen, this is the perspective that is central to

Scripture’s interpretation of our Lord’s crucifixion; and it is the perspective

of verses like Hebrews 1:3 and Ephesians 1:11, which are clearly

intended to cover everything that happens in our world. Of course, our

Lord’s crucifixion is the supreme instance of how God ordains real evil

for his own glory and his children’s good: in that case, the most awful

act ever done—the crucifixion by wicked yet responsible men of God’s

only Son, “the Holy and Righteous One” who is the very “Author of

life” (Acts 2:23 and 3:14f.)—was and is also the most wonderful event

that has ever occurred because it was through Christ’s utterly unjust and

undeserved crucifixion and death that God was reconciling the world to

himself (see 2 Cor. 5:18-21).

God’s Will and Our Wills

It is not accidental that very early in Genesis, long before we get to

Joseph’s story, we are told that “every inclination of [the unredeemed

human heart] is evil from childhood” (Gen. 8:21, NIV; cf. 6:5). We now

know what that means: it means that each of us enters this post-fall world

as a slave to sin. Sin, Paul declares, “came into the world through one

man, and death through sin, and so death spread to all men because all

sinned” (Rom. 5:12). Sin reigns among all of Adam’s descendants

because he sinned. By his disobedience, he brought evil into the heart of

the human race. Except by God’s redeeming grace, it now runs through

all of us as our primary inclination. Every son and daughter of Adam and

Eve is now naturally dominated by sin. We know, then, what motivated

Joseph’s brothers. We know what they brought to Joseph’s situation.

God, as the One who actively sustains all things (see again Heb. 1:3 with

Col. 1:17), was the source of their being. But they, as Adam’s descendants,

were the sole source of their sin. Their sinful inclinations made them the

66 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

52 For instance, 1 Timothy 2:4 states that God “desires all people to be saved and to come to the

knowledge of the truth”; 2 Peter 3:9 says that he does not wish that any should perish; and Ezekiel

18:32 declares that he has “no pleasure in the death of anyone.” Such verses clearly appear to run

counter to the claim that our Lord sustains the universe in such a way that everything within it accomplishes

exactly what he wants. I cannot address such verses here. For careful exposition of verses like

these, see, e.g., Thomas R. Schreiner and Bruce A. Ware, eds., The Grace of God, the Bondage of the

Will: Biblical and Practical Perspectives on Calvinism (Grand Rapids, Mich.: Baker, 1995), two vols.

and David N. Steele, Curtis C. Thomas, and S. Lance Quinn, The Five Points of Calvinism: Defined,

Defended, and Documented (Phillipsburg, N.J.: P&R, 2004 (second edition)).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 66

authors of their own sin. And, consequently, they did evil while God did

not, for while God sustained them in their sin, he was not its source. This

is why Scripture states that God creates, sends, permits, and even moves

others to do evil while never doing evil himself. He creates and sustains

sinful persons without himself being the source of their sin.

God ordains evil by willing that evil persons and things and events

and deeds exist and persist. Joseph’s brothers would never have existed

if God had not willed their being. He formed their inward parts and knitted

them together in their mothers’ wombs (see Ps. 139:13).53 They

would have had no power to choose or to act if God had not momentby-

moment sustained them. God wrote each of their days in his book

before time began (see Ps. 139:16). He hemmed them in, “behind and

before” (Ps. 139:5; cf. Job 13:27). Nothing about them or their choices

or acts surprised him.54 God has never fallen prey to a vain trust in the

goodness of human beings, as Wiesel did.

Yet, as the guilty reactions of Joseph’s brothers suggest (see Gen.

42:21f. with 44:16; 45:3, 5; 50:15-17), we should know that the fact

that God has ordained everything, including our free choices, does not

remove or lessen our responsibility, our guilt, or our liability to be punished

for our sins (see Gal. 6:7).

So what has our examination of the Scriptures yielded? It has

yielded this: we find, scattered throughout the Old and New Testaments,

cases where human intentions, choices, and actions and God’s intention,

choice, and action run parallel, cases where both the human intentions,

choices, and actions and God’s intention, choice, and action are taken

as referring to and each as fully explaining the same object or event.

These intentions, choices, and actions are referred to under different

descriptions—the human intentions, choices, and actions are sometimes

wicked or evil, although God’s intention, choice, and action is always

good, even when he is ordaining an evil event—and the human and

divine intentions, choices, and actions are each taken to explain the same

reality in different ways. For instance, by their evil act, Joseph’s broth-

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 67

53 The words of Psalm 139 are David’s words, who is one of God’s chosen ones, but there is every

reason to think that virtually all of those words through verse 16 apply equally well to all human

beings.

54 Sanders claims that God had “no reason to suspect” that Adam and Eve would sin. Their sin surprised

God. See The God Who Risks, 45-49 and my response in “True Freedom,” 94ff.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 67

ers meant to do him harm; but by means of ordaining their evil act, God

meant to do Joseph and many others good. But each choice—the one by

sinful humans and the other by our perfectly good God—is taken as a

full or complete explanation of the same object or event.

So the biblical view is this: God has ordained or willed or planned

everything that happens in our world from before creation, from before

time began. God is the primary agent—the primary cause, the final and

ultimate explanation—of everything that happens, yet the causal relationship

between God and his creatures is such that his having foreordained

everything is compatible with—and indeed takes nothing away

from—their creaturely power and efficacy. Unless we are dealing with a

situation in which God has miraculously intervened and thus overridden

mere creaturely causality, creaturely activity—as “secondary” or “proximate”

causes considered simply on the created level—fully explains

whatever happens in this world. And all of this is as true of the relationship

between divine and free human agency as it is of the relationship

between divine and natural—that is, physical and biological—agency.55

68 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

55 It is not hard to understand how God’s agency relates to natural agency: God makes physical and biological

beings and the natural laws that they obey, and then sustains those beings so that they affect each

other according to those laws. So when the wind blows, the cradle rocks because the wind is the “secondary”

or “proximate” cause of the cradle’s rocking, given the physical laws that God has set for our

universe. Again, I as a biological being get bruised when the wind blows so hard that a tree limb breaks

loose and falls on me, because that is what happens when God sustains both me and that tree limb and

the physical and biological laws that govern how falling tree limbs and animal bodies relate to each other.

In both of these examples, God is the “primary” cause of what happens because, if he didn’t sustain

these beings and the laws they obey, then they would have no existence and no power to affect anything.

And there doesn’t seem to be any problem in claiming that God ordained or willed or planned

these beings to interact with each other in these ways from before creation. God’s foreordination of these

beings and events does not seem to violate in any way their “natural” interactions.

But it is much harder to understand how God can ordain or will or plan our free acts from

before time began without his foreordination cancelling the freedom of those acts. In fact, as I argue

in the text’s next paragraph, we simply cannot fully understand how this can be. And yet we have

now seen that Scripture affirms both God’s primary agency, which involves the fact that his ordaining

will is the final and ultimate explanation for our free acts, and the fact that we still do them freely

and responsibly. Either we accept the witness of the Scriptures here or we do not. Footnotes 56 and

58 show that some great theologians have been willing to bite the bullet about this and just accept

the fact that divine and free human agency do both exist in the sort of dual-explanation way that I

explored in the previous section. Here is a little more from the Westminster Confession of Faith on

the same topic:

God, the great Creator of all things, doth uphold, direct, dispose, and govern all creatures,

actions, and things (see Dan. 4:34f.; Ps. 135:6; Acts 17:25-28; Job 38–41), from

the greatest even to the least, by his most wise and holy providence (see Prov. 15:3; Ps.

104:24; 145:17), according to his infallible foreknowledge (see Acts 15:17f.), and the free

and immutable counsel of his own will (see Ps. 33:10f.), to the praise of the glory of his

wisdom, power, justice, goodness and mercy (see Isa. 63:14; Ps. 145:7).

Although, in relation to the foreknowledge and decree of God, the first cause, all things

come to pass immutably and infallibly; yet, by the same providence, he ordereth them to

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 68

“But,” you ask, “how can this possibly be? How can Joseph’s brothers

have acted freely and responsibly if what they did was what God had

previously ordained? How can Pilate and Herod and Judas and the

Jewish people be properly blamed for what God had predestined to take

place? How can God govern the choices of human beings without that

entailing that those choices are no longer free? How can the same event

have two complete explanations?” My answer is this: We cannot understand

how these things can possibly be. We cannot understand how

some human act can be fully explained in terms of God’s having freely

intended it without that explanation cancelling the freedom and responsibility

of its human intenders. We cannot understand how divine and

human agency are compatible in a way that allows the exercise of each

kind of agency to be fully explanatory of some object or event. And

yet—and this is the absolutely crucial point—we can understand why

we cannot understand it. It is because our attempts to understand this

involve our trying to understand the unique relationship between the

Creator and his creatures in terms of our understanding of some creature-

to-creature relationship. But these attempts, it should be obvious,

involve us in a kind of “category mistake” that dooms our attempts

from the start. A “category mistake” involves attempting to think about

something under the wrong category. How the Creator’s agency relates

to his creatures’ agency is to be categorized quite differently from how

any creature’s agency relates to any other creature’s agency. This should

be obvious merely by our remembering that God has created everything

ex nihilo—out of nothing—while all creaturely creation involves some

sort of limited action on some pre-existing “stuff.”

When Scripture reveals anything about the relationship between

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 69

fall out according to the nature of second causes, either necessarily, freely, or contingently

(see Gen. 8:22; Ex. 21:12-14 with Deut. 19:4-6; 1 Kings 22:1-38; Isa. 10:5-7). . . .

The almighty power, unsearchable wisdom, and infinite goodness of God, so far manifest

themselves in his providence, that it extendeth itself even to the first fall, and all other

sins of angels and men (see Rom. 11:32f.; 1 Chron. 10:4-14; 2 Sam. 16:5-11), and that

not by a bare permission, but such as hath joined with it a most wise and powerful bounding

(see 2 Kings 19:28), and otherwise ordering and governing of them, in a manifold

dispensation, to his own holy ends (see Isa. 10:6f.); yet so as the sinfulness thereof proceedeth

only from the creature, and not from God; who being most holy and righteous,

neither is nor can be the author or approver of sin (see 1 John 2:16; Ps. 50:21).

(Westminster Confession of Faith, 5.1, 2, 4)

I have included some of the Confession’s biblical proofs for these claims, but only those which

are the most important of those that I have not discussed elsewhere in this piece. Each one of these

proof texts is worth reading.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 69

divine and human agency, it merely affirms what Joseph declared in

Genesis 50:20—it affirms both divine and human agency, with both

kinds of agency referring to and explaining the same event, but with each

kind of agency explaining that event in its own way. Thus Scripture

reveals that both human agency and divine agency are to be fully

affirmed without attempting to tell us how this can be, because we have

no way to understand it, no matter what Scripture would say: all of our

analogies concerning different agents or different kinds of agency must

be drawn from what holds between and among creatures, and so we

necessarily lack the conceptual wherewithal to plumb how God’s foreordaining

agency enables and yet governs our own free agency.56 As

David said, after confessing that God knew his every word even before

it was on his own tongue, such knowledge is too wonderful for us; it is,

quite literally, too lofty for us to attain (see Ps. 139:4-6).57

In summary, this means that we should affirm the age-old

Christian doctrine of God’s complete providence over all. God has

sovereignly ordained, from before the world began, everything that

70 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

56 I don’t mean this to say that the ways that God governs both the godly and the ungodly are completely

dark to us. In his Dogmatic Theology (Phillipsburg, N.J.: P&R, 2003; third one-volume edition,

ed. Alan Gomes [first published in three volumes in 1888 and 1894]), W. G. T. Shedd makes

some very illuminating remarks in his sections on God’s efficacious and permissive decrees (318-322)

and on election and reprobation (326-44). But both in the cases where we can gain some insight and

in those where we cannot, we are to affirm with the Psalmist that God fashions the hearts of all human

beings (33:15).

Those who want to dismiss this position often label it as “Calvinism,” but Fergus Kerr, O. P.,

has emphasized that it is also the great medieval Catholic Thomas Aquinas’s position:

For Thomas, God is the cause that enables all agents to cause what they do. . . . There is

no problem. He cites Isaiah 26:12 [“O LORD, . . . you have done for us all our works”]

. . . together with John 15:5: ‘Without me, you can do nothing’; and Philippians 2:13: ‘It

is God who worketh in us to will and to accomplish according to his good will’. For

Thomas, evidently, Scripture settles it; there is no need for theoretical explanations of how

divine freedom and human freedom do not, or need not be thought to, encroach on each

other. . . . Thomas only excludes certain tempting views: yes, God does everything, God

is not a partner in the existence and activities of the world; God does everything, however,

in such a way that the autonomy and reality of created agents is respected. Above

all: the effect is not attributed to a human agent and to divine agency in such a way that

it is partly done by God and partly by the human agent; rather, it is done wholly by both,

according to a different way, just as the same effect is wholly attributed to the instrument

and also wholly to the principal agent—but now Thomas is referring us to an analogy,

and either we see it or we don’t. In the end, he excludes certain views and leaves us simply

with the mystery of the relationship between divine creativity and human autonomy.

. . . Thomas has nothing more basic to offer than these observations. (Fergus Kerr,

O.P., After Aquinas: Versions of Thomism [Oxford: Blackwell, 2002], 44-46. My thanks

to my former student, Michael Ajay Chandra, for bringing this passage to my attention.)

57 As Justin Taylor has neatly put it to me, if we are biblical about these things, then we know that

we will never be held accountable to explain how divine and human agency are compatible, but we

will be held accountable for believing that they are.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 70

happens in our world, but in a way that does no violence to creation’s

secondary causes and in a way that does not take away from human

freedom or responsibility.58

Beyond All Doubt

If all of this is true, then what should we be sure of when we are hurt by

others or when we hurt others or ourselves? When we are thinking about

human suffering and its relationship to God’s will and our wills, what

should be beyond all doubt?

It should be beyond all doubt that no one suffers anything at anyone

else’s hand without God having ordained that suffering. During his

first hour or so in Birkenau, Elie Wiesel saw the notorious Joseph

Mengele, looking “like the typical SS officer: a cruel, though not unintelligent,

face, complete with monocle.” 59 Mengele was asking the new

arrivals a few questions and then, with a conductor’s baton, casually

directing them either to his left, so that they went immediately to the

gas chambers, or to his right to the forced-labor camp. In seeing

Mengele, Wiesel was seeing a very evil man whom, nevertheless, God

was actively sustaining and governing, nanosecond by nanosecond,

through his evil existence. And we can be sure that, from before time

began, God had ordained that at that place those moments would be

filled with just those persons, doing and suffering exactly as they did.

We can be sure, because of what God says in places like Hebrews 1:3

and Ephesians 1:11, that even those persons in those moments did not

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 71

58 Here is the way that the Westminster Confession (3:1) makes this section’s point. Notice how closely

it parallels Aquinas:

God, from all eternity, did, by the most wise and holy counsel of His own will freely, and

unchangeably ordain whatsoever comes to pass (see Eph. 1:11; Rom. 11:33; Heb. 6:17;

Rom 9:15, 18): yet so, as thereby neither is God the author of sin (see James 1:13, 17;

1 John 1:5), nor is violence offered to the will of the creatures; nor is the liberty or contingency

of second causes taken away, but rather established (see Acts 2:23; Matt. 17:12;

Acts 4:27, 28; John 19:11; Prov. 16:33).

59 Night, 31. Mengele was a medical doctor who was nicknamed “The Angel of Death.” He carried

out unspeakable experiments on some of his prisoners, including injecting chemicals into childrens’

eyes in an attempt to change their eye color from brown to the preferred Aryan blue. He would visit

the children, acting kindly and bringing them candy and clothing in order to keep them calm and

happy, and then transport them in what looked like a Red Cross truck or in his personal vehicle to

his laboratory beside the crematoria where he would perform his horrible experiments and then burn

their bodies. He specialized in experiments involving identical twins. He was intrigued to see if he

could make them differ genetically by, among other horrors, performing sex-change operations on

one of them or removing one twin’s limbs or organs in macabre surgical procedures that were performed

without the use of anesthesia and that had no scientific basis or value.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 71

fall out of God’s “hands” but that he actually brought the whole situation

about, guiding and governing and carrying it by his all-powerful

and ever-effectual word to where it would accomplish exactly what he

wanted it to do.

We can also be sure that when we hurt each other, the God who has

made us in his image is watching and will call us to account (see Gen.

9:4-6). Even though he ordains all of our free sinful choices, those sinful

choices still “count” and we are held responsible for them. Even

though he ordained the acts of a Joseph Mengele, God will not allow

the blood of his victims to cry out forever. He will bring Mengele and

all wrongdoers to justice (see Deut. 32:35, quoted at Rom. 12:19;

Ps. 94). He will avenge innocent blood by punishing those who have

shed it (Joel 3:17-21).60

We can also be sure that, whatever God is accomplishing as he

actively carries along all things, it is just and right. As the Scriptures

emphatically declare, God is indeed the Rock on which we, in even life’s

most evil moments, can rest, the one whose works are perfect and all of

whose ways are just. In ordaining the evil works of others, he himself

does no wrong, “upright and just is he.”

Of course, this is not to say that we will always know what God is

accomplishing through the evils that we suffer or do. We can be sure, as

Scripture confirms, that God has made everything for its purpose, even

evil persons like Joseph Mengele or Dennis Rader. We can be sure that

God has made our lives’ most evil moments as well as their best. Yet why

he has ordained that particular evil persons do particular evil things may

be as unclear to us as his sufferings were to Job.

Yet if we are Christians, then we can be sure beyond all doubt that

God is causing all things—including all of our suffering at the hands of

evil persons—to work together for good because he has called us according

to his purpose (see Rom. 8:28). We can be sure that even the worst

of our suffering will someday be revealed to be an integral part of “all

the good that is ours in Christ” (Philem. 6, RSV). For God has promised

this. And God’s promises are as deeds already done. As the apostle Paul

has written:

72 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

60 This is true even when Christians have done what is wrong, although our punishment may be

wholly borne by Christ’s sacrifice.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 72

For those whom he foreknew he also predestined to be conformed to

the image of his Son, in order that he might be the firstborn among

many brothers. And those whom he predestined he also called, and

those whom he called he also justified, and those whom he justified he

also glorified. (Rom. 8:29-30)

Our future glorification is so sure that it is viewed by Paul as having

already taken place, and so he puts it in the past tense. And out of this

assurance comes Paul’s great exclamations:

What then shall we say to these things? If God is for us, who can be

against us? He who did not spare his own Son but gave him up for us all,

how will he not also with him graciously give us all things? . . . Who shall

separate us from the love of Christ? Shall tribulation, or distress, or persecution,

or famine, or nakedness, or danger, or sword? As it is written,

“For your sake we are being killed all the day long;

we are regarded as sheep to be slaughtered.”

No! In all these things we are more than conquerors through him who

loved us. For I am sure that neither death nor life, nor angels nor rulers,

nor things present nor things to come, nor powers, nor height nor

depth, nor anything else in all creation, will be able to separate us from

the love of God in Christ Jesus our Lord.61

As the New Living Translation renders verse 37, “No, despite all these

things, overwhelming victory is ours through Christ,” who has loved us

with a timeless love and who will therefore be faithful to us forever (see

Jer. 31:3).

Yet sometimes these great exclamations certainly don’t seem to be

true. Sometimes it seems as if what is happening to us or to Christians

whom we love or even to Christians, such as Boyd’s Suzanne, whom we

just heard about—sometimes it seems that what is happening is so bad

that it seems impossible that God could be ordaining them for our good.62

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 73

61 Romans 8:31f., 35-39. I have changed the punctuation at the beginning of verse 37 to make Paul’s

“No” as emphatic as he means it.

62 I am specifying Christians here, because God’s promise that all things work together for good is for

them and not for all human beings. It is through our acceptance by faith of Christ’s reconciling work

that we are given the right to be called children of God and thus to have the immeasurable comfort of

knowing that God is our loving Father who, we are promised, is working out all things for our good.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 73

I myself find it very difficult to understand how this can be with

some of the worst things that human beings do, like sexually abusing

young children or raping or torturing someone mercilessly. And, of

course, something much less horrible than these sorts of things can happen

to us and still leave us wondering how God could be ordaining it

for our good. I have seen marriages break apart after thirty-five years

and felt to some degree the grief and utter discombobulation of the abandoned

spouse. I have watched tragedies unfold that seem to remove all

chance for any more earthly happiness.

But, of course, none of this is new. In Scripture, there is much sorrow

and tragedy, with a great deal of it caused by other people. And, as

we read the Scriptures, we can hear the moanings and groanings and

roarings of God’s people:

I am weary with my moaning;

every night I flood my bed with tears;

I drench my couch with my weeping.

My eye wastes away because of grief;

it grows weak because of all my foes. (Ps. 6:6f.)

My God, my God, why hast thou forsaken me?

why art thou so far from helping me,

and from the words of my roaring?63

And then there are these utterly poignant words of Job, early in his book,

after he has lost nearly everything, including his children:

Why is light given to him who is in misery,

and life to the bitter in soul,

who long for death, but it comes not,

and dig for it more than for hidden treasures,

who rejoice exceedingly

and are glad when they find the grave?

Why is light given to a man whose way is hidden,

whom God has hedged in?

74 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

63 Psalm 22:1, KJV. This older translation of the Hebrew word sheagah as “roaring” is in some ways

better than more recent translations like “groaning.” The word refers first and foremostly to the roaring

of a lion, and so I think we have good reason to believe that David’s experience was like the experience

of someone in such extremity in an emergency room that he literally roars like a lion in his pain.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 74

For my sighing comes instead of my bread,

and my [roarings]64 are poured out like water.

For the thing that I fear comes upon me,

and what I dread befalls me.

I am not at ease, nor am I quiet;

I have no rest, but trouble comes. (Job 3:20-26)

Could any words be more poignant than these?—Perhaps only those of

our Lord as he was forsaken of his Father on the cross.

But it is of these sorts of things that the apostle Paul is writing when

he cries, in Romans 8, that nothing in all of creation can separate us

from the love of God in Christ Jesus our Lord. Paul was not speaking

in the abstract here; he was speaking out of his own experience, as it is

clear when he is defending his apostleship:

Are they servants of Christ? I am a better one—I am talking like a madman!—

with far greater labors, far more imprisonments, with countless

beatings, and often near death. Five times I received at the hands of the

Jews the forty lashes less one. Three times I was beaten with rods. Once

I was stoned. Three times I was shipwrecked; a night and a day I was

adrift at sea; on frequent journeys, in danger from rivers, danger from

robbers, danger from my own people, danger from Gentiles, danger in

the city, danger in the wilderness, danger at sea, danger from false

brothers; in toil and hardship, through many a sleepless night, in

hunger and thirst, often without food, in cold and exposure. And, apart

from other things, there is the daily pressure on me of my anxiety for

all the churches. Who is weak, and I am not weak? Who is made to

fall, and I am not indignant? (2 Cor. 11:23-29)

Paul reports afflictions so severe that he and those with him “despaired

of life itself” (2 Cor. 1:8; see vv. 8-11).

Many of us have tasted such grief. I have known afflictions far

worse than my paralysis. I have had seasons of perplexity about God’s

providence that have been so deep that night after night sleep has fled

from me. Yet these griefs have been God’s gifts. For only by such severe

suffering has my loving Father broken me free of some of my deeper

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 75

64 The Hebrew word is sheagah.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 75

idolatries. In the nights’ watches, while others sleep, my wakeful heart

must find its rest in him or it will find no rest at all.

“Be gracious to me, O God,” David prayed when the Philistines

seized him at Gath, “for man tramples on me; all day long an attacker

oppresses me; my enemies trample on me all day long, for many attack

me proudly. When I am afraid,” he states,

I put my trust in you.

In God, whose word I praise,

in God I trust; I shall not be afraid.

What can flesh do to me?

“All day long,” David continues, “they twist my words”;

all their thoughts are against me for ra>.

They stir up strife, they lurk;

they watch my steps,

as they have waited for my life. (Ps. 56:1-6)

But God, David knows, has kept count of his nightly tossings; he has

numbered his futile wanderings; he has kept track of all of David’s sorrows.

He has put David’s tears in a bottle and written all of his anguish

in his book.65 And David knows that the God who cares for him that

much will never abandon him. “This I know,” he declares, “that God

is for me. In God, whose word I praise, in the LORD, whose word I

praise, in God I trust; I shall not be afraid. What can man do to me?

(Ps. 56:9b-11). David knows that God will keep his feet from sliding so

that he may still walk before God “in the light of life” (Ps. 56:13).

I would not pretend to tell someone who has been sexually abused

as a child how God means that evil for her good. But I know some men

and women who have found their own abuse to be God’s gift. I would

not tell an angry Suzanne that I can clearly see how God has meant her

husband’s sin for her good. But I know some who trace God’s hand even

through such sorrows. It would not be my place to tell Elie Wiesel that

the ten thousand who sighed out their prayers of praise to God on that

Rosh Hashanah now long ago took the better part than he did as he

76 The Sovereignty of God in Suffering

65 My previous two sentences compile various renderings of the difficult-to-translate words of Psalm

56:8. I have also preferred the ESV’s marginal reading for v. 5a.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 76

stood apart from their faith. But perhaps Corrie ten Boom could witness

to him of God’s providence and loving goodness, even in such

straits.

The mystery of why God has ordained the evils he has is as deep as

the mystery of the evils in our hearts. And just as only God can plumb

the depths of our hearts, so only God knows how the hurts we do to

each other and to ourselves figure into his loving cure of us who shelter

ourselves under the blood and righteousness of his Son. It is not always

our place to attempt to give an answer to those who are questioning

God’s goodness because of the evils that others have done to them or

that they have done to themselves; sometimes we should just stand

silently by their sides. Moreover, we will not always, right now, have

these answers for ourselves. But in glory the answers will be clear, when

we will see Jesus face to face. Then we will see that God has indeed done

all that he pleased and has done it all perfectly, both for his glory and

our good, for in the light of Jesus’ countenance—in that “light of life”—

we will see that through our sufferings our loving Father has been conforming

us to the likeness of his Son.

As David said, “Weeping may last for the night, but joy is coming

in the morning” (Ps. 30:5).66

“All the Good That Is Ours in Christ” 77

66 Thanks to my students Rose Acquavella, John Higgins, Luke Damoff, Andrew Herther, Megan

Ensor, and Jon Searle for helpful comments on an earlier draft.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 77

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 78

Part 2:

The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 79

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 80

What I would like to do this chapter is magnify Christ in his suffering.

In the process I would like to venture the ultimate biblical

explanation for the existence of suffering. And I would like to do it in

such a way that you and I would be freed from the paralyzing effects of

discouragement and self-pity and fear and pride so that we would spend

ourselves—able or disabled—to spreading a passion for the supremacy

of God in all things (including suffering) for the joy of all peoples

through Jesus Christ.

The Ultimate Biblical Explanation for the Existence

of Suffering

I believe the entire universe exists to display the greatness of the glory

of the grace of God. I might have said more simply that the entire universe

exists to display the greatness of the glory of God. That would be

true. But the Bible is more specific. The glory of God shines most

brightly, most fully, most beautifully in the manifestation of the glory of

his grace. Therefore, this is the ultimate aim and the final explanation

of all things—including suffering.

God decreed from all eternity to display the greatness of the glory

of his grace for the enjoyment of his creatures, and he revealed to us that

this is the ultimate aim and explanation of why there is sin and why there

is suffering, and why there is a great suffering Savior. Jesus Christ, the

The Suffering of Christ and

the Sovereignty of God

chapter 3

John Piper

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 81

Son of God, came in the flesh to suffer and die and by that suffering and

death to save undeserving sinners like you and me. This coming to suffer

and die is the supreme manifestation of the greatness of the glory of

the grace of God. Or to say it a little differently, the death of Christ in

supreme suffering is the highest, clearest, surest display of the glory of

the grace of God. If that is true, then a stunning truth is revealed, namely,

suffering is an essential part of the created universe in which the greatness

of the glory of the grace of God can be most fully revealed.

Suffering is an essential part of the tapestry of the universe so that the

weaving of grace can be seen for what it really is.

Or to put it most simply and starkly: the ultimate reason that suffering

exists in the universe is so that Christ might display the greatness

of the glory of the grace of God by suffering in himself to overcome our

suffering. The suffering of the utterly innocent and infinitely holy Son of

God in the place of utterly undeserving sinners to bring us to everlasting

joy is the greatest display of the glory of God’s grace that ever was,

or ever could be.

This was the moment—Good Friday—for which everything in the

universe was planned. In conceiving a universe in which to display the

glory of his grace, God did not choose plan B. There could be no greater

display of the glory of the grace of God than what happened at Calvary.

Everything leading to it and everything flowing from it is explained by

it, including all the suffering in the world.

The Biblical Pathway That Leads to This Truth

Walk with me now, if you would, on the biblical pathway that has led

me to this truth. To this point it just looks like high-sounding theology

or philosophy. But it is far more than that. It is what the very words of

Scripture clearly teach.

Revelation 13:8

Let’s begin with Revelation 13:8. John writes, “All who dwell on earth

will worship [the beast], everyone whose name has not been written

before the foundation of the world in the book of life of the Lamb that

was slain.” That is a good, careful, literal translation. This means that

before the world was created there was a book called the book of life of

82 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 82

the Lamb that was slain. The Lamb is Jesus Christ crucified. The book

is the book of Jesus Christ crucified. Therefore, before God made the

world he had in view Jesus Christ slain, and he had in view a people purchased

by his blood written in the book. Therefore, the suffering of Jesus

was not an afterthought, as though the work of creation did not go the

way God planned. Before the foundation of the world God had a book

called the book of life of the Lamb that was slain. The slaying of the

Lamb was in view before the work of creation began.

2 Timothy 1:9

Then consider 2 Timothy 1:9. Paul looks back into eternity before the

ages began and says, “[God] saved us and called us to a holy calling, not

because of our works but because of his own purpose and grace, which

he gave us [that is, he gave us this grace] in Christ Jesus before the ages

began.” God gave us grace [undeserved favor—favor toward sinners,

grace!] in Christ Jesus before the ages began. We had not yet been created.

We had not yet existed so that we could sin. But God had already

decreed that grace—an “in Christ” kind of grace, blood-bought grace,

sin-overcoming grace—would come to us in Christ Jesus. All that before

the creation of the world.

So there is a book of life of the Lamb who was slain, and there is

“grace” flowing to undeserving sinners who are not yet created. Don’t

miss the magnitude of that word “slain” (esphagmenou): “the Lamb

who was slain.” It is used in the New Testament only by the apostle John

and means “slaughter.” So here we have suffering—the slaughter of the

Son of God—in the mind and plan of God before the foundation of the

world. The Lamb of God will suffer. He will be slaughtered. That’s the

plan.

Why? I’ll give you the biblical text which tells the answer, but let me

state it again: it’s because the aim of creation is the fullest, clearest, surest

display of the greatness of the glory of the grace of God. And that display

would be the slaughter of the best being in the universe for millions

of undeserving sinners. The suffering and death of the Lamb of God in

history is the best possible display of the glory of the grace of God. That

is why God planned it before the foundation of the world.

The Suffering of Christ and the Sovereignty of God 83

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 83

Ephesians 1

Here’s the biblical support first from Ephesians 1. In verses four to six

Paul says, “[God] chose us in him [that is, in Christ] before the foundation

of the world, that we should be holy and blameless before him. In

love he predestined us for adoption through Jesus Christ, according to

the purpose of his will, to the praise of the glory of his grace.” The goal

of the entire history of redemption is to bring about the praise of the

glory of the grace of God.

But notice that twice in these verses Paul says that this plan happened

“in Christ” or “through Christ” before the foundation of the

world. He says that God chose us in Christ before the foundation of the

world in order to bring about the praise of the glory of his grace. And

he says in verse 5 that God predestined our adoption through Christ

before the foundation of the world to bring about the praise of the glory

of his grace. What does it mean that “in Christ” we were chosen and

that our adoption was to happen “through Christ”? We know that,

according to Paul, Christ suffered and died as a redeemer so that we

might be adopted as children of God (Gal. 4:5). Our adoption could not

happen apart from the death of Christ.

Therefore, what Paul means is that to choose us “in Christ” and to

plan to adopt us “through Christ” was to plan the suffering and death

of his Son before the foundation of the world. And Ephesians 1:6, 12,

and 14 make plain that the goal of this plan was to bring about “the

praise of the glory of the grace of God.” That is what God was aiming

at. And that is why he planned the suffering and death of his Son for

sinners before the creation of the world.

Revelation 5:9-12

Now consider the second biblical support that the aim of creation is

the fullest display of the greatness of the glory of God’s grace in the

slaughter of his Son. We see it in Revelation 5:9-12. Here the hosts of

heaven are worshiping the Lamb precisely because he was slain—

killed, slaughtered.

And they sang a new song, saying, “Worthy are you to take the scroll

and to open its seals, for you were slain, and by your blood you ransomed

people for God from every tribe and language and people and

84 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 84

nation.”. . . Then I looked, and I heard around the throne . . . myriads

of myriads and thousands of thousands, saying with a loud voice,

“Worthy is the Lamb who was slain, to receive power and wealth and

wisdom and might and honor and glory and blessing!”

The hosts of heaven focus their worship not simply on the Lamb, but

on the “Lamb who was slain.” And they are still singing this song in

Revelation 15:3. Therefore we can conclude that the centerpiece of worship

in heaven for all eternity will be the display of the glory of the grace

of God in the slaughtered Lamb. Angels and all the redeemed will sing

of the suffering of the Lamb forever and ever. The suffering of the Son

of God will never be forgotten. The greatest suffering in history will be

at the center of our worship and our wonder forever and ever. This is

not an afterthought of God. This is the plan from before the foundation

of the world.

Everything else is subordinate to this plan. Everything else is put in

place for the sake of this plan: the display of the greatness of the glory

of the grace of God in the suffering of the Beloved is the goal of the creation

and the goal of all history.

The Mystery of God Ordaining but Not Doing Sin

Do you see what this implies about sin and suffering in the universe?

According to this divine plan, God permits sin to enter the world. God

ordains that what he hates will come to pass. It is not sin in God to will

that there be sin. We do not need to fathom this mystery. We may content

ourselves by saying over the sin of Adam and Eve what Joseph said

over the sin of his brothers when they sold him into slavery: “As for you,

you meant evil against me, but God meant it for good” (Gen. 50:20).

As for you, Adam and Eve, you meant evil against God as you

rejected him as your Father and Treasure, but oh what an infinite good

he planned through your fall! The Seed of the woman will one day bruise

the head of the great Serpent, and by his suffering he will display the

greatness of the glory of the grace of God. You have not undone his plan.

Just as Joseph was sold sinfully into slavery, you have sold yourselves

for an apple. You have fallen, and now the stage is set for the perfect

display of the greatness of the glory of the grace of God.

For not only did sin enter the world, but through sin came suffer-

The Suffering of Christ and the Sovereignty of God 85

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 85

ing and death. Paul tells us that God subjected the world to futility and

corruption under his holy curse. He put it like this in Romans 8:20-23:

The creation was subjected to futility, not willingly, but because of him

who subjected it, in hope that the creation itself will be set free from

its bondage to decay and obtain the freedom of the glory of the children

of God. For we know that the whole creation has been groaning

together in the pains of childbirth until now. And not only the creation,

but we ourselves, who have the firstfruits of the Spirit, groan inwardly

as we wait eagerly for adoption as sons, the redemption of our bodies.

When sin entered the world, horrible, horrible things followed. Diseases,

defects, disabilities, natural catastrophes, human atrocities—from the

youngest infant to the oldest codger, from the vilest scoundrel to the

sweetest saint—suffering is no respecter of persons. That’s why Paul said

in Romans 8:23, “We ourselves, who have the firstfruits of the Spirit,

groan inwardly as we wait eagerly for adoption as sons, the redemption

of our bodies.”

Ezekiel tells us that God does not delight in this suffering. “As I live,

declares the Lord GOD, I have no pleasure in the death of the wicked”

(Ezek. 33:11). But the plan remains, and Jeremiah gives us a glimpse into

the mysterious complexity of the mind of God in Lamentations 3:32-33,

“Though he cause grief, he will have compassion according to the abundance

of his steadfast love; for he does not willingly afflict or grieve the

children of men.” Literally: “He does not from his heart [millibbô] afflict

or grieve the children of men.” He ordains that suffering come—

“though he cause grief”—but his delight is not in the suffering, but in

the great purpose of creation: the display of the glory of the grace of God

in the suffering of Christ for the salvation of sinners.

The stage has been set. The drama of redemptive history begins to

unfold. Sin is now in its full and deadly force. Suffering and death are

present and ready to consume the Son of God when he comes. All things

are now in place for the greatest possible display of the glory of the grace

of God.

Therefore, in the fullness of time God sent his Son into the world to

suffer in the place of sinners. Every dimension of his saving work was

accomplished by suffering. In the life and death of Jesus Christ, suffering

finds its ultimate purpose and ultimate explanation: suffering exists

86 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 86

so that Christ might display the greatness of the glory of the grace of

God by suffering in himself to overcome our suffering.

Everything—everything—that Christ accomplished for us sinners he

accomplished by suffering. Everything that we will ever enjoy will come

to us because of suffering.

The Display of the Glory of the Grace of God in the

Achievements of Christ by His Suffering

Consider the display of the glory of the grace of God in the achievements

of Christ by his suffering.

1 . C h r i s t A b s o r b e d t h e W r a t h o f G o d o n O u r B e h a l f —

a n d H e D i d I t b y S u f f e r i n g

Galatians 3:13, “Christ redeemed us from the curse of the law by

becoming a curse for us—for it is written, ‘Cursed is everyone who is

hanged on a tree.’” The wrath of God that should have caused our eternal

suffering fell on Christ. This is the glory of grace, and it could only

come by suffering.

2 . C h r i s t B o r e O u r S i n s a n d P u r c h a s e d O u r F o r g i v e n e s s —

a n d H e D i d I t b y S u f f e r i n g

1 Peter 2:24, “He himself bore our sins in his body on the tree.” Isaiah

53:5, “He was wounded for our transgressions; he was crushed for our

iniquities.” The sins that should have crushed us under the weight of

guilt were transferred to Christ. This is the glory of grace, and it could

only come by suffering.

3 . C h r i s t P r o v i d e d a P e r f e c t R i g h t e o u s n e s s f o r U s T h a t

B e c o m e s O u r s i n H i m — a n d H e D i d I t b y S u f f e r i n g

Philippians 2:7-8, “[He] made himself nothing, taking the form of a servant,

being born in the likeness of men. And being found in human form,

he humbled himself by becoming obedient to the point of death, even

death on a cross.” The obedience of Christ by which many are counted

righteous (Rom. 5:19) had to be an obedience unto death, even death on

a cross. This is the glory of grace, and it would come only by suffering.

The Suffering of Christ and the Sovereignty of God 87

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 87

4 . C h r i s t D e f e a t e d D e a t h — a n d H e D i d I t b y

S u f f e r i n g D e a t h

Hebrews 2:14-15, “Since therefore the children share in flesh and blood,

he himself likewise partook of the same things, that through death he

might destroy the one who has the power of death, that is, the devil, and

deliver all those who through fear of death were subject to lifelong slavery.”

“‘O death, where is your victory? O death, where is your sting?’ The

sting of death is sin, and the power of sin is the law. But thanks be to God,

who gives us the victory through our Lord Jesus Christ” (1 Cor. 15:55-

57). This is the glory of grace, and it would come only by suffering.

5 . H e D i s a r m e d S a t a n — a n d H e D i d I t b y S u f f e r i n g

Colossians 2:14-15, “[The record of debts against us] he set aside, nailing

it to the cross. He disarmed the rulers and authorities and put them

to open shame, by triumphing over them in him.” When the record of

all our lawbreaking is nailed to the cross and cancelled, the power of

Satan to destroy us is broken. Satan has only one weapon that can damn

us to hell—unforgiven sin. This weapon Christ stripped from Satan’s

hand on the cross. This is the glory of grace, and it could only come by

suffering.

6 . C h r i s t P u r c h a s e d P e r f e c t F i n a l H e a l i n g f o r A l l H i s

P e o p l e — a n d H e D i d I t b y S u f f e r i n g

“Upon him was the chastisement that brought us peace, and with his

stripes we are healed” (Isa. 53:5). “The Lamb in the midst of the throne

will be their shepherd, and he will guide them to springs of living water,

and God will wipe away every tear from their eyes” (Rev. 7:17). The

Lamb was slaughtered and the Lamb was raised from the dead, and the

Lamb together with the Father will wipe every tear from our eyes. This

is the glory of grace, and it could only come by suffering.

7 . C h r i s t W i l l B r i n g U s F i n a l l y t o G o d — a n d H e W i l l D o I t

b y H i s S u f f e r i n g

1 Peter 3:18, “Christ also suffered once for sins, the righteous for the

unrighteous, that he might bring us to God.” The ultimate achievement

of the cross is not freedom from sickness but fellowship with God. This

88 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 88

is what we were made for: seeing and savoring and showing the glory

of God. This is the glory of grace, and it could only come by suffering.

The Ultimate Reason Why Suffering Exists

The ultimate purpose of the universe is to display the greatness of the

glory of the grace of God. The highest, clearest, surest display of that

glory is in the suffering of the best Person in the universe for millions of

undeserving sinners. Therefore, the ultimate reason that suffering exists

in the universe is so that Christ might display the greatness of the glory

of the grace of God by suffering in himself to overcome our suffering

and bring about the praise of the glory of the grace of God.

O Christian, remember what Carl Ellis and David Powlison and

Mark Talbot and Steve Saint and Joni Eareckson Tada and Dustin

Shramek say in this book: they all, in their own way, say that whether

we are able or disabled, enduring loss or delighting in friends, suffering

pain or savoring pleasure, all of us who believe in Christ are immeasurably

rich in him and have so much to live for. Don’t waste your life.

Savor the riches that you have in Christ and spend yourself no matter

the cost to spread your riches to this desperate world.

The Suffering of Christ and the Sovereignty of God 89

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 89

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 90

Why did God appoint for Paul to suffer so much as the prototype of

the frontier missionary? He is sovereign. As every child knows he

could toss Satan into the pit today if he wanted to and all his terrorizing

of the church would be over. But God wills that the mission of the

church advance through storm and suffering. What are the reasons? I

will mention six.

1. Suffering Deepens Faith and Holiness

Hebrews 12 tells us that God disciplines his children through suffering.

His aim is deeper faith and deeper holiness. “He disciplines us for our

good, that we may share his holiness” (Heb. 12:10). Jesus experienced

the same thing. “Although he was a son, he learned obedience through

what he suffered” (Heb. 5:8). This does not mean that Jesus grew from

disobedience to obedience; the same writer says he never sinned (Heb.

4:15). It means that the process through which he demonstrated deeper

and deeper obedience was the process of suffering. For us there is not

only the need to have our obedience tested and proven deep, but also

purified of all remnants of self-reliance and entanglement with the

world.

This chapter, in slightly different form, originally appeared in John Piper, Let the Nations Be Glad:

The Supremacy of God in Missions, 2nd ed. (Grand Rapids, Mich.: Baker, 2003), 86-102. Used with

permission.

Why God Appoints Suffering

for His Servants

chapter 4

John Piper

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 91

Paul described this experience in his own life like this:

For we do not want you to be ignorant, brothers, of the affliction we

experienced in Asia. For we were so utterly burdened beyond our

strength that we despaired of life itself. Indeed, we felt that we had

received the sentence of death. But that was to make us rely not on ourselves

but on God who raises the dead. (2 Cor. 1:8-9)

Paul does not concede his suffering to the hand of Satan but says that

God ordained it for the increase of his faith. God knocked the props of

life out from under Paul’s heart so that he would have no choice but to

fall on God and get his hope from the promise of the resurrection. This

is the first purpose of missionary suffering: to wean us from the world

and set our hope fully in God alone (cf. Rom 5:3-4). Since the freedom

to love flows from this kind of radical hope (Col. 1:4-5), suffering is a

primary means of building compassion into the lives of God’s servants.

Thousands of missionaries through the centuries have found that

the sufferings of life have been the school of Christ where lessons of faith

were taught that could not be learned anywhere else. For example, John

G. Paton, who was born in 1824 in Scotland, was a missionary to the

New Hebrides (today’s Vanuatu) in the South Seas from 1858 almost

until his death in 1907. He lost his wife four months after he landed on

the island of Tanna at the age of thirty-four. Two weeks later his newborn

son died. He buried them alone with his own hands. “But for Jesus,

and the fellowship he vouchsafed to me there, I must have gone mad and

died beside the lonely grave!”1 He stayed on the island for a harrowing

four years of dangers. Finally there was an uprising mounted against

him, and he believed it was right to try to escape. He sought help from

the one person he could trust on the island, his friend Nowar. His escape

was an unforgettable discovery of grace that left a lifelong spiritual

mark. To escape, Nowar told Paton he could not stay in the village;

instead, he should hide in a tree, which his son would show him, and

there stay till the moon rises.

92 The Purposes of God in Suffering

1 James Paton, ed., John G. Paton: Missionary to the New Hebrides, an Autobiography (Edinburgh:

Banner of Truth, 1965 [original publication, 1889, 1898]), 80.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 92

Being entirely at the mercy of such doubtful and vacillating friends, I,

though perplexed, felt it best to obey. I climbed into the tree and was

left there alone in the bush. The hours I spent there live all before me

as if it were but of yesterday. I heard the frequent discharging of muskets,

and the yells of the Savages. Yet I sat there among the branches,

as safe in the arms of Jesus. Never, in all my sorrows, did my Lord draw

nearer to me, and speak more soothingly in my soul, than when the

moonlight flickered among these chestnut leaves, and the night air

played on my throbbing brow, as I told all my heart to Jesus. Alone,

yet not alone! If it be to glorify my God, I will not grudge to spend

many nights alone in such a tree, to feel again my Savior’s spiritual

presence, to enjoy His consoling fellowship. If thus thrown back upon

your own soul, alone, all alone, in the midnight, in the bush, in the very

embrace of death itself, have you a Friend that will not fail you then?2

2. Suffering Makes Your Cup Increase

By enduring suffering with patience, the reward of our experience of

God’s glory in heaven increases. This is part of Paul’s meaning in 2

Corinthians 4:17-18.

For this slight momentary affliction is preparing for us an eternal

weight of glory beyond all comparison, as we look not to the things

that are seen but to the things that are unseen. For the things that are

seen are transient, but the things that are unseen are eternal.

Paul’s affliction is “preparing” or “effecting” or “bringing about” a

weight of glory beyond all comparison. We must take seriously Paul’s

words here. He is not merely saying that he has a great hope in heaven

that enables him to endure suffering. That is true. But here he says that

the suffering has an effect on the weight of glory. There seems to be a

connection between the suffering endured and the degree of glory

enjoyed. Of course the glory outstrips the suffering infinitely, as Paul says

in Romans 8:18, “I consider that the sufferings of this present time are

not worth comparing with the glory that is to be revealed to us.”

Nevertheless the weight of that glory, or the experience of that glory,

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 93

2 Ibid., p. 200. For a brief overview of Paton’s life and ministry, see John Piper, “‘You Will Be Eaten

By Cannibals!’ Courage in the Cause of World Missions: Lessons from the Life of John G. Paton” at

www.desiringGod.org.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 93

seems to be more or less, depending in part on the affliction we have

endured with patient faith.

Jesus pointed in the same direction when he said, “Blessed are you

when others revile you and persecute you and utter all kinds of evil

against you falsely on my account. Rejoice and be glad, for your reward

is great in heaven” (Matt. 5:11-12). This would carry the greatest

encouragement to rejoice if Jesus meant that the more we endure suffering

in faith, the greater will be our reward. If a Christian who suffers

much for Jesus and one who does not suffer much experience God’s final

glory in exactly the same way and degree, it would seem strange to tell

the suffering Christian to rejoice and be glad (in that very day, cf. Luke

6:23) because of the reward he would receive even if he did not suffer.

The reward promised seems to be in response to the suffering and a specific

recompense for it. If this is not explicit and certain here, it does seem

to be implied in other passages of the New Testament. I will let Jonathan

Edwards bring them out as we listen to one of the most profound reflections

on this problem I have ever read. Here Edwards deals, in a breathtaking

way, with the issue of how there can be degrees of happiness in

a world of perfect joy.

There are different degrees of happiness and glory in heaven. . . . The

glory of the saints above will be in some proportion to their eminency

in holiness and good works here [and patience through suffering is one

of the foremost good works, cf. Rom. 2:7]. Christ will reward all

according to their works. He that gained ten pounds was made ruler

over ten cities, and he that gained five pounds over five cities (Luke

19:17-19). “He that soweth sparingly, shall reap sparingly; and he that

soweth bountifully shall reap also bountifully” (2 Corinthians 9:6).

And the apostle Paul tells us that, as one star differs from another star

in glory, so also it shall be in the resurrection of the dead (1 Corinthians

15:41). Christ tells us that he who gives a cup of cold water unto a disciple

in the name of a disciple, shall in no wise lose his reward. But this

could not be true, if a person should have no greater reward for doing

many good works than if he did but few.

It will be no damp to the happiness of those who have lower

degrees of happiness and glory, that there are others advanced in glory

above them: for all shall be perfectly happy, every one shall be perfectly

satisfied. Every vessel that is cast into this ocean of happiness is full,

though there are some vessels far larger than others; and there shall be

94 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 94

no such thing as envy in heaven, but perfect love shall reign through

the whole society. Those who are not so high in glory as others, will

not envy those that are higher, but they will have so great, and strong,

and pure love to them, that they will rejoice in their superior happiness;

their love to them will be such that they will rejoice that they are happier

than themselves; so that instead of having a damp to their own

happiness, it will add to it. . . .

And so, on the other hand, those that are highest in glory, as they

will be the most lovely, so they will proportionally excel in divine

benevolence and love to others, and will have more love to God and

to the saints than those that are lower in holiness and happiness. And

besides, those that will excel in glory will also excel in humility. Here

in this world, those that are above others are the objects of envy,

because . . . others conceive of them as being lifted up with it; but in

heaven it will not be so, but those saints in heaven who excel in happiness

will also [excel] in holiness, and consequently in humility. . . .

The exaltation of some in heaven above the rest will be so far from

diminishing the perfect happiness and joy of the rest who are inferior,

that they will be the happier for it; such will be the union in their society

that they will be partakers of each other’s happiness. Then will

be fulfilled in its perfections that which is declared in 1 Corinthians

12:22, “If one of the members be honored all the members rejoice

with it.”3

Thus one of the aims of God in the suffering of the saints is to enlarge

their capacity to enjoy his glory both here and in the age to come. When

their cup is picked up as it were from the “scum of the world” (1 Cor.

4:13), and tossed into the ocean of heaven’s happiness, it will hold more

happiness for having been long weaned off the world and made to live

on God alone.

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 95

3 Jonathan Edwards, The Works of Jonathan Edwards, 2 vols. (Edinburgh: Banner of Truth, 1974),

2:902. The parable of the workers in the vineyard who all made the same wage (Matt. 20:1-16) need

not be in conflict with what Edwards (and the texts he cites!) teaches here. What that text may imply

is that all of us are thrown into the same ocean of happiness. Another point of that parable is that

God is free to give anyone any degree of blessing more than he deserves, and if there is anyone who

is self-pitying in or proud about his endurance, God is indeed free to exalt a person even above him

so as to humble him and make him realize all of heaven is all of grace. I think Jonathan Edwards

effectively answers Craig Blomberg’s question: “Is it not fundamentally self-contradictory to speak

of degrees of perfection?” “Degrees of Reward in the Kingdom of Heaven,” in Journal of the

Evangelical Theological Society 35 (June 1992): 162-63. I do, however, want to side with Blomberg

over against those who speak of “earning” rewards and who distort the conditional promises of

heaven into promises of levels of reward in heaven.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 95

3. Suffering Is the Price of Making Others Bold

God uses the suffering of his missionaries to awaken others out of their

slumbers of indifference and make them bold. When Paul was imprisoned

in Rome he wrote of this to the church at Philippi. “Most of the

brothers, having become confident in the Lord by my imprisonment, are

much more bold to speak the word without fear” (Phil. 1:14). If he must,

God will use the suffering of his devoted emissaries to make a sleeping

church wake up and take risks for God.

The sufferings and dedication of young David Brainerd has had this

effect on thousands. Henry Martyn recorded Brainerd’s impact on his

life again and again in his Journal.

September 11, 1805: What a quickening example has he often been to me,

especially on this account, that he was of a weak and sickly constitution!

May 8, 1806: Blessed be the memory of that holy man! I feel happy

that I shall have his book with me in India, and thus enjoy, in a manner,

the benefit of his company and example.

May 12, 1806: My soul was revived today through God’s neverceasing

compassion, so that I found the refreshing presence of God in

secret duties; especially was I most abundantly encouraged by reading D.

Brainerd’s account of the difficulties attending a mission to the heathen.

Oh, blessed be the memory of that beloved saint! No uninspired writer

ever did me so much good. I felt most sweetly joyful to labor amongst the

poor natives here; and my willingness was, I think, more divested of those

romantic notions, which have sometimes inflated me with false spirits.4

Five Inspiring Wives

In our own time it is hard to overstate the impact that the martyrdom

of Jim Elliot, Nate Saint, Ed McCully, Pete Fleming, and Roger

Youderian has had on generations of students.5 The word that appeared

96 The Purposes of God in Suffering

4 Journal and Letters of Henry Martyn, 240, 326-28.

5 For their remarkable story, see the following resources: Elisabeth Elliot, Through Gates of Splendor,

40th Anniversary Edition (Wheaton, Ill.: Tyndale House, 1986); Elisabeth Elliot, Shadow of the

Almighty: The Life and Testament of Jim Elliot (San Francisco, Calif.: Harper San Francisco, 1989);

Elisabeth Elliot, The Savage My Kinsmen, 40th Anniversary Edition (Ann Arbor, Mich.: Servant

Publications, 1996); Steve Saint, “Did They Have to Die?” Christianity Today 40, no. 10 (September

16, 1996): 20-27; Russell T. Hitt, Jungle Pilot: The Gripping Story of the Life and Witness of Nate

Saint, Martyred Missionary to Ecuador (Grand Rapids, Mich: Discovery House, 1997).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 96

again and again in the testimonies of those who heard the Huaorani6

story was “dedication.” But more than is often realized it was the

strength of the wives of these men that made many of us feel a surge of

desire to be dedicated.

Barbara Youderian, the wife of Roger, wrote in her diary that night

in January 1956:

Tonight the Captain told us of his finding four bodies in the river. One

had tee-shirt and blue-jeans. Roj was the only one who wore them. . . .

God gave me this verse two days ago, Psalm 48:14, “For this God is

our God for ever and ever; He will be our Guide even unto death.” As

I came face to face with the news of Roj’s death, my heart was filled

with praise. He was worthy of his homegoing. Help me, Lord, to be

both mummy and daddy.7

It is not hard to feel the biblical point Paul was making. The suffering

of the servants of God, borne with faith and even praise, is a shattering

experience to apathetic saints whose lives are empty in the midst of

countless comforts.

Applications Doubled at His Death

The execution of Wycliffe missionary Chet Bitterman by the Colombian

guerrilla group M-19 on March 6, 1981, unleashed an amazing zeal for

the cause of Christ. Chet had been in captivity for seven weeks while his

wife, Brenda, and little daughters Anna and Esther waited in Bogotaoe.

The demand of M-19 was that Wycliffe get out of Colombia.

They shot him just before dawn—a single bullet to the chest. Police

found his body in the bus where he died, in a parking lot in the south

of town. He was clean and shaven, his face relaxed. A guerrilla banner

wrapped his remains. There were no signs of torture.

In the year following Chet’s death “applications for overseas service with

Wycliffe Bible Translators doubled. This trend was continued.”8 It is not

the kind of missionary mobilization that any of us would choose. But it

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 97

6 This is the name of the tribe formerly called Auca, which means “savage.”

7Quoted in Elisabeth Elliot, Through Gates of Splendor (New York: Harper & Row, 1957), 235-36.

8 Steve Estes, Called to Die (Grand Rapids, Mich.: Zondervan, 1986), 252.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 97

is God’s way. “Unless a grain of wheat falls into the earth and dies, it

remains alone; but if it dies, it bears much fruit” (John 12:24).

4. Suffering Fills Up What Is Lacking in Christ’s Afflictions

The suffering of Christ’s messengers ministers to those they are trying to

reach and may open them to the gospel. This was one of the ways Paul

brought the gospel to bear on the people in Thessalonica. “You know

what kind of men we proved to be among you for your sake. And you

became imitators of us and of the Lord, for you received the word in

much affliction, with the joy of the Holy Spirit” (1 Thess. 1:5-6). They

had imitated Paul by enduring much affliction with joy, the sort of

endurance that Paul had evidenced among them. So it was his suffering

that moved them and drew them to his authentic love and truth.

This is the kind of ministry Paul had in mind when he said, “As we

share abundantly in Christ’s sufferings, so through Christ we share

abundantly in comfort too. If we are afflicted, it is for your comfort and

salvation” (2 Cor. 1:5-6). His sufferings were the means God used to

bring salvation to the Corinthian church. The Corinthians could see the

suffering love of Christ in Paul. He was actually sharing in Christ’s sufferings

and making them real for the church.

This is part of what Paul meant in that amazing statement in

Colossians 1:24, “I rejoice in my sufferings for your sake, and in my flesh

I am filling up what is lacking in Christ’s afflictions for the sake of his

body, that is, the church.” Christ’s afflictions are not lacking in their

atoning sufficiency. They are lacking in that they are not known and felt

by people who were not at the cross. Paul dedicated himself not only to

carry the message of those sufferings to the nations, but also to suffer

with Christ and for Christ in such a way that what the people saw were

“Christ’s sufferings.” In this way he followed the pattern of Christ by

laying down his life for the life of the church. “I endure everything for

the sake of the elect, that they also may obtain the salvation that is in

Christ Jesus with eternal glory” (2 Tim. 2:10).

“When We Saw Your Blistered Feet”

While I was working on the first edition of Let the Nations Be Glad! in

1992, I had an opportunity to hear J. Oswald Sanders speak. His mes-

98 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 98

sage touched deeply on suffering. He was eighty-nine years old at the

time and still traveled and spoke around the world. He had written a

book a year since he turned seventy! I mention that only to exult in the

utter dedication of a life poured out for the gospel without thought of

coasting in self-indulgence from age sixty-five to the grave.9

He told the story of an indigenous missionary who walked barefoot

from village to village preaching the gospel in India. After a long day of

many miles and much discouragement he came to a certain village and

tried to speak the gospel but was spurned. So he went to the edge of the

village dejected and lay down under a tree and slept from exhaustion.

When he awoke the whole town was gathered to hear him. The

head man of the village explained that they came to look him over while

he was sleeping. When they saw his blistered feet they concluded that

he must be a holy man, and that they had been evil to reject him. They

were sorry and wanted to hear the message that he was willing to suffer

so much to bring them.

At the Third Beating the Women Wept

One of the unlikeliest men to attend the Itinerant Evangelists’

Conference in Amsterdam sponsored by the Billy Graham Association

was a Masai Warrior named Joseph. But his story won him a hearing

with Dr. Graham himself. The story is told by Michael Card.

One day Joseph, who was walking along one of these hot, dirty African

roads, met someone who shared the gospel of Jesus Christ with him.

Then and there he accepted Jesus as his Lord and Savior. The power of

the Spirit began transforming his life; he was filled with such excitement

and joy that the first thing he wanted to do was return to his own village

and share that same Good News with the members of his local tribe.

Joseph began going from door-to-door, telling everyone he met

about the Cross of Jesus and the salvation it offered, expecting to see

their faces light up the way his had. To his amazement the villagers not

only didn’t care, they became violent. The men of the village seized him

and held him to the ground while the women beat him with strands of

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 99

9 For an organization devoted to helping people nearing retirement give their energy and skill and

heart to the cause of Christ, see the Finishers Project (http://www.finishers.org/). Part of their vision

statement says, “We can either give them to Jesus to lay up as treasure in Heaven or lose them.”

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 99

barbed wire. He was dragged from the village and left to die alone in

the bush.

Joseph somehow managed to crawl to a waterhole, and there,

after days of passing in and out of consciousness, found the strength

to get up. He wondered about the hostile reception he had received

from people he had known all his life. He decided he must have left

something out or told the story of Jesus incorrectly. After rehearsing

the message he had first heard, he decided to go back and share his faith

once more.

Joseph limped into the circle of huts and began to proclaim Jesus.

“He died for you, so that you might find forgiveness and come to know

the living God,” he pleaded. Again he was grabbed by the men of the

village and held while the women beat him reopening wounds that had

just begun to heal. Once more they dragged him unconscious from the

village and left him to die.

To have survived the first beating was truly remarkable. To live

through the second was a miracle. Again, days later, Joseph awoke in

the wilderness, bruised, scarred—and determined to go back.

He returned to the small village and this time, they attacked him

before he had a chance to open his mouth. As they flogged him for the

third and probably the last time, he again spoke to them of Jesus Christ,

the Lord. Before he passed out, the last thing he saw was that the

women who were beating him began to weep.

This time he awoke in his own bed. The ones who had so severely

beaten him were now trying to save his life and nurse him back to

health. The entire village had come to Christ.10

Surely this is something of what Paul meant when he said, “I fill up what

is lacking in Christ’s afflictions, for the sake of his body” (Col. 1:24).

5. Suffering Enforces the Missionary Command to Go

The suffering of the church is used by God to reposition the missionary

troops in places they might not have otherwise gone. This is clearly

the effect that Luke wants us to see in the story of the martyrdom of

Stephen and the persecution that came after it. God spurs the church

into missionary service by the suffering she endures. Therefore we

must not judge too quickly the apparent setbacks and tactical defeats

of the church. If you see things with the eyes of God, the Master

100 The Purposes of God in Suffering

10 Michael Card, “Wounded in the House of Friends,” Virtue (March/April 1991): 28-29, 69.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 100

Strategist, what you see in every setback is the positioning of troops

for a greater advance and a greater display of his wisdom and power

and love.

Acts 8:1 charts the divine strategy for the persecution: “There arose

on that day [the day of Stephen’s murder] a great persecution against the

church in Jerusalem, and they were all scattered throughout the regions

of Judea and Samaria, except the apostles.” Up until now no one had

moved out to Judea and Samaria in spite of what Jesus had said in Acts

1:8: “You will receive power when the Holy Spirit has come upon you,

and you will be my witnesses in Jerusalem and in all Judea and

Samaria. . . .” It is no accident that these are the very two regions to

which the persecution sends the church. What obedience will not

achieve, persecution will.

To confirm this divine missionary purpose of the persecution, Luke

refers to it in Acts 11:19: “Now those who were scattered because of

the persecution that arose over Stephen traveled as far as Phoenicia and

Cyprus and Antioch, speaking the word to no one except Jews.” But in

Antioch some spoke to Greeks also. In other words, the persecution not

only sent the church to Judea and Samaria (Acts 8:1) but also beyond

to the nations (Acts 11:19).

The Inertia of Ease, the Apathy of Abundance

The lesson here is not just that God is sovereign and turns setbacks into

triumphs. The lesson is that comfort and ease and affluence and prosperity

and safety and freedom often cause a tremendous inertia in the

church. The very things that we think would produce personnel and

energy and creative investment of time and money for the missionary

cause instead produce the exact opposite: weakness, apathy, lethargy,

self-centeredness, and preoccupation with security.

Studies have shown that the richer we are, the smaller the percentage

of our income we give to the church and its mission. The poorest

fifth of the church give 3.4 percent of their income to the church and the

richest fifth give 1.6 percent—half as much as the poorer church members.

11 It is a strange principle, one that probably goes right to the heart

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 101

11 The Minneapolis Star Tribune carried an article on Friday, May 3, 1991, from which these data

are taken.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 101

of our sinfulness and Christ’s sufficiency, that hard times, like persecution,

often produce more personnel, more prayer, more power, more

open purses than easy times.

It is hard for a rich man to enter the kingdom of heaven, Jesus said

(Matt. 19:23). It is also hard for rich people to help others enter. Jesus

said as much in the parable of the soils. “The cares of the world, and the

delight in riches, and the desire for other things enter in and choke the

word and it proves unfruitful” (Mark 4:19, AT)—unfruitful for missions

and most every other good work.

Persecution can have harmful effects on the church, but prosperity

seems even more devastating to the mission God calls us to. My point

here is not that we should seek persecution. That would be presumption—

like jumping off the temple. The point is that we should be very

wary of prosperity and excessive ease and comfort and affluence. And

we should not be disheartened but filled with hope if we are persecuted

for righteousness’ sake, because the point of Acts 8:1 is that God makes

persecution serve the mission of the church.

We must not be glib about this. The price of missionary advance is

immense. Stephen paid for it with his life. And Stephen was one of the

brightest stars in the Jerusalem sky. His enemies “could not withstand

the wisdom and the Spirit with which he spoke” (Acts 6:10, AT). Surely

he was more valuable alive than dead, we would all reason. He was

needed! There was no one like Stephen! But God saw it another way.

How Joseph Stalin Served the Cause

The way God brought whole Uzbek villages to Christ in the twentieth

century is a great illustration of God’s strange use of upheaval and displacement.

Bill and Amy Stearns tell the story in their hope-filled book,

Catch the Vision 2000.12 The key player was Joseph Stalin.

Thousands of Koreans fled what is now North Korea in the 1930s as

the Japanese invaded. Many of these settled around Vladivostok.

When Stalin in the late ’30s and early ’40s began developing

Vladivostok as a weapons manufacturing center, he deemed the

Koreans a security risk. So he relocated them in five areas around the

102 The Purposes of God in Suffering

12 Bill and Amy Stearns, Catch the Vision 2000 (Minneapolis: Bethany, 1991), 12-13.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 102

Soviet Union. One of those areas was Tashkent, hub of the staunchly

Muslim people called the Uzbeks. Twenty million strong, the Uzbeks

had for hundreds of years violently resisted any Western efforts to

introduce Christianity.

As the Koreans settled around Tashkent, the Uzbeks welcomed

their industry and kindness. Within a few decades, the Koreans were

included in nearly every facet of Uzbek cultural life.

As usual in God’s orchestration of global events, he had planted

within the relocated Koreans strong pockets of believers. Little did

Stalin suspect that these Koreans would not only begin enjoying a wildfire

revival among their own people, they would also begin bringing

their Muslim, Uzbek, and Kazak friends to Christ.

The first public sign of the Korean revival and its breakthrough

effects on the Uzbeks and Kazaks came on June 2, 1990, when in the

first open-air Christian meeting in the history of Soviet Central Asia, a

young Korean from America preached to a swelling crowd in the

streets of Alma-Ata, capital of Kazakhstan.

The result of these roundabout, decades-long maneuverings by God to

position his people in inaccessible places is that Muslims, who would not

receive missionaries, are confessing that Isa (Jesus) is the way the truth

and the life. This was a costly strategy for many believers. To be

uprooted from their homeland in Korea, and then again from their new

home near Vladivostok, must have been a severe test of the Koreans’

faith that God is good and has a loving plan for their lives. The truth

was that God did have a loving plan, and not only for their lives but also

for many unreached Muslims among the Uzbek and Kazak peoples.

Going Forward by Getting Arrested

God’s strange ways of guiding the missionary enterprise are seen similarly

in the way Jesus told the disciples to expect arrest and imprisonment

as God’s deployment tactic to put them with people they would

never otherwise reach. “They will lay their hands on you and persecute

you, delivering you up to the synagogues and prisons, and you will be

brought before kings and governors for my name’s sake. This will be a

time for you to bear testimony” (Luke 21:12-13, AT; cf. Mark 13:9).

The June/July 1989 issue of Mission Frontiers carried an article

signed with the pseudonym, Frank Marshall. He was a missionary in a

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 103

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 103

politically sensitive Latin American country.13 He told the story of his

recent imprisonment. He and his coworkers had been beaten numerous

times and thrown in jail before. This time federal agents accused him of

fraud and bribing because they assumed he could not have gotten his

official documents without lying. They did not believe that he had been

born in the country.

In prison the Lord spared him from sexual assault from a huge man

wrapped in a towel with four gold chains around his neck and a ring on

every finger. When put in the cell with this man, Frank began sharing

the gospel with him and praying in his heart, “Lord, deliver me from this

evil.” The man changed color, shouted at Frank to shut up, and told him

to leave him alone.

Frank began to tell others about Christ when the men had free time

in the courtyard. One Muslim named Satawa confessed Christ within

the first week and invited Frank to answer questions with a group of fifteen

other Muslims. In two weeks Frank finally was able to get a lawyer.

He also asked for a box of Bibles. The next Sunday forty-five men gathered

in the courtyard to hear Frank preach. He spoke about how hard

it was for him to be away from his family, and spoke of how much God

loved his Son and yet gave him up for sinners so that we could believe

and live. Thirty of these men stayed afterwards to pray and ask the Lord

to lead them and forgive them. Frank was soon released and deported

to the United States. But he now knows firsthand the meaning of Jesus’

words, “This will be a time for testimony.”

Miracles in Mozambique

During the 1960s the Lord raised up an indigenous leader in the church

in Mozambique named Martinho Campos. The story of his ministry,

Life Out of Death in Mozambique, is a remarkable testimony to God’s

strange ways of missionary blessing.

Martinho was leading a series of meetings in the administrative area

of Gurue sixty miles from his own area of Nauela. The police arrested

him and put him in jail without a trial. The police chief, a European,

assumed that the gatherings were related to the emerging guerrilla

104 The Purposes of God in Suffering

13 Frank Marshall, “Fear No Evil,” Missions Frontiers, June 1, 1989.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 104

group Frelimo. But even when the Catholic priest told him that these

men were just “a gathering of heretics,” he took no concern for justice,

though he wondered why the common people brought so much food to

the prisoner, as though he were someone important.

One night he was driving his truck with half a dozen prisoners in it

and saw “what appeared to be a man in gleaming white, standing in the

road, facing him.” He swerved so sharply that the truck rolled over and

he was trapped underneath. The prisoners themselves lifted the truck so

that the police chief could get out.

After brief treatment in the hospital he returned to talk to Martinho

because he knew there was some connection between this vision and the

prisoner. He entered Martinho’s cell and asked for forgiveness.

Martinho told him about his need for God’s forgiveness and how to have

it. The police chief said humbly, “Please pray for me.” Immediately the

chief called for hot water so that the prisoner might wash, took him out

of solitary confinement, and saw to it that a fair trial was held. Martinho

was released.

But the most remarkable thing was what followed: “Not only did

the chief of police make plain his respect for what Martinho stood for,

but he also granted him official permission to travel throughout the

whole area under his jurisdiction in order to preach and hold evangelical

services.”14 There would have been no way that such a permission

would have been given through the ordinary channels. But God had a

way through suffering. The imprisonment was for the advancement of

the gospel.

God Was Better Served in Prison

On January 9, 1985, Pastor Hristo Kulichev, a Congregational pastor

in Bulgaria, was arrested and put in prison. His crime was that he

preached in his church even though the state had appointed another man

the pastor, one whom the congregation did not elect. Kulichev’s trial was

a mockery of justice, and he was sentenced to eight months imprisonment.

During his time in prison he made Christ known every way he

could.

When he got out, he wrote, “Both prisoners and jailers asked many

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 105

14 Phyllis Thompson, Life Out of Death in Mozambique (London: Hodder and Stoughton, 1989), 111.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 105

questions, and it turned out that we had a more fruitful ministry there

than we could have expected in church. God was better served by our

presence in prison than if we had been free.”15 In many places in the

world, the words of Jesus are as radically relevant as if they had been

spoken yesterday. “They will deliver you to prison. . . . This will be a

time for you to bear testimony” (Luke 21:12-13, AT). The pain of our

shattered plans is for the purpose of scattered grace.

6. The Supremacy of Christ Is Manifest in Suffering

The suffering of missionaries is meant by God to magnify the power and

sufficiency of Christ. Suffering is finally to show the supremacy of God.

When God declined to remove the suffering of Paul’s “thorn in the

flesh,” he said to Paul, “My grace is sufficient for you, for my power is

made perfect in weakness.” To this Paul responded, “I will boast all the

more gladly of my weaknesses, so that the power of Christ may rest

upon me. For the sake of Christ, then, I am content with weaknesses,

insults, hardships, persecutions, and calamities. For when I am weak,

then I am strong” (2 Cor. 12:9-10).

Paul was strong in persecutions because “the power of Christ”

rested upon him and was made perfect in him. In other words, Christ’s

power was Paul’s only power when his sufferings brought him to the end

of his resources and cast him wholly on Jesus. This was God’s purpose

in Paul’s thorn, and it is his purpose in all our suffering. God means for

us to rely wholly on him. “That was to make us rely not on ourselves

but on God who raises the dead” (2 Cor. 1:9). The reason God wants

this is because this kind of trust shows his supreme power and love to

sustain us when we can’t do anything to sustain ourselves.

We began this chapter with this claim: loss and suffering, joyfully

accepted for the kingdom of God, show the supremacy of God’s worth

more clearly in the world than all worship and prayer. This truth has

been implicit in the six reasons we’ve been looking at as to why God

appoints suffering for the messengers of his grace. But now we need to

make explicit that the supremacy of God is the reason for suffering running

through and above all the other reasons. God ordains suffering

106 The Purposes of God in Suffering

15 Herbert Schlossberg, Called to Suffer, Called to Triumph (Portland: Multnomah, 1990), 230.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 106

because through all the other reasons it displays to the world the

supremacy of his worth above all treasures.

Jesus makes crystal clear how we can rejoice in persecution.

“Blessed are you when others revile you and persecute you and utter all

kinds of evil against you falsely on my account. Rejoice and be glad, for

your reward is great in heaven” (Matt. 5:11-12). The reason we can

rejoice in persecution is that the worth of our reward in heaven is so

much greater than the worth of all that we lose through suffering on

earth. Therefore, suffering with joy proves to the world that our treasure

is in heaven and not on the earth, and that this treasure is greater

than anything the world has to offer. The supremacy of God’s worth

shines through the pain that his people will gladly bear for his name.

Gladly Will I Boast of Weakness and Calamity

I use the word “gladly” because that’s the way the saints speak of it. For

example, we just saw Paul saying, “I will boast all the more gladly of

my weaknesses . . . insults, hardships, persecutions, and calamities”

(2 Cor. 12:9-10). He says the same thing in Romans: “We rejoice in our

sufferings.” And the reason he gives is that it produces patience and a

tested quality of life and an unfailing hope (Rom. 5:3-4). In other words,

his joy flowed from his hope just the way Jesus said it should. And Paul

makes clear that the reward is the glory of God. “We rejoice in hope of

the glory of God” (Rom. 5:2). And so it is the supremacy of God’s worth

that shines through in Paul’s joy in affliction.

We find the other apostles reacting the same way in Acts 5:41 after

being beaten for their preaching: “Then they left the presence of the

council, rejoicing that they were counted worthy to suffer dishonor for

the name” (Acts 5:41). This fearless joy in spite of real danger and great

pain is the display of God’s superiority over all that the world has to

offer.

You Joyfully Accepted the Plundering of Your Property

Again the early Christians who visited their friends in prison rejoiced

even though it cost them their possessions. “For you had compassion on

those in prison, and you joyfully accepted the plundering of your property,

since you knew that you yourselves had a better possession and an

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 107

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 107

abiding one” (Heb. 10:34). Joy in suffering flows from hope in a great

reward. Christians are not called to live morose lives of burdensome persecution.

We are called to rejoice. “Rejoice insofar as you share Christ’s

sufferings” (1 Pet. 4:13). “Count it all joy, my brothers, when you meet

various trials” (James 1:2).

The Love of God Is Better Than Life

The basis for this indomitable joy is the supremacy of God’s love above

life itself. “Your steadfast love is better than life. . . .” (Ps. 63:3). The

pleasures in this life are “fleeting” (Heb. 11:25) and the afflictions are

“light and momentary” (2 Cor. 4:17, NIV). But the steadfast love of the

Lord is forever. All his pleasures are superior and there will be no more

pain. “In your presence there is fullness of joy; at your right hand are

pleasures forevermore” (Ps. 16:11).

Glad Suffering Shines Brighter Than Gratitude

It is true that we should bear testimony to the supremacy of God’s goodness

by receiving his good gifts with thanksgiving (1 Tim. 4:3). But for

many Christians this has become the only way they see their lifestyles

glorifying God. God has been good to give them so much; therefore, the

way to witness to the reality of God is to take and be thankful.

But even though it is true that we should thankfully enjoy what we

have, there is a relentless call in the Bible not to accumulate more and

more things, but to give more and more, and to be deprived of things if

love demands it. There are no easy rules to tell us whether the call on

our lives is the call of the rich young ruler to give away all that we have,

or the call of Zacchaeus to give away half of what we have. What is clear

from the New Testament is that suffering with joy, not gratitude in

wealth, is the way the worth of Jesus shines most brightly.

Who can doubt that the supremacy of Christ’s worth shines brightest

in a life like this:

But whatever gain I had, I counted as loss for the sake of Christ. Indeed I

count everything as loss because of the surpassing worth of knowing

Christ Jesus my Lord. For his sake I have suffered the loss of all things

and count them as refuse in order that I may gain Christ. (Phil. 3:7-8, AT)

108 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 108

You cannot show the preciousness of a person by being happy with

his gifts. Ingratitude will certainly prove that the giver is not loved. But

gratitude for gifts does not prove that the giver is precious. What proves

that the giver is precious is the glad-hearted readiness to leave all his gifts

to be with him. This is why suffering is so central in the mission of the

church. The goal of our mission is that people from all the nations worship

the true God. But worship means cherishing the preciousness of

God above all else, including life itself. It will be very hard to bring the

nations to love God from a lifestyle that communicates a love of things.

Therefore, God ordains in the lives of his messengers that suffering sever

our bondage to the world. When joy and love survive this severing, we

are fit to say to the nations with authenticity and power: hope in God.

How Is Hope in God Made Visible?

Peter talks about the visibility of this hope: “Hallow the Lord Christ in

your hearts, ready always to give a reason to everyone who asks you for

a word concerning the hope that is in you” (1 Pet. 3:15, AT). Why would

people ask about hope? What kind of life are we to live that would make

people wonder about our hope? If our security and happiness in the future

were manifestly secured the way the world secures its future, no one would

ask us about it. There would be no unusual hope to see. What Peter is saying

is that the world should see a different hope in the lives of Christians—

not a hope in the security of money or the security of power or the security

of houses or lands or portfolios, but the security of “the grace that is coming

to you at the revelation of Jesus Christ” (1 Pet. 1:13, AT).

Therefore, God ordains suffering to help us release our hold on

worldly hopes and put our “hope in God” (1 Pet. 1:21). The fiery trials

are appointed to consume the earthly dependencies and leave only the

refined gold of “genuine faith” (1 Pet. 1:7). “Therefore let those who suffer

according to God’s will entrust their souls to a faithful Creator while

doing good” (1 Pet. 4:19). It’s the supremacy of God’s great faithfulness

above all other securities that frees us to “rejoice as [we] share in Christ’s

sufferings” (1 Pet. 4:13, AT). Therefore, joy in suffering for Christ’s sake

makes the supremacy of God shine more clearly than all our gratitude

for wealth.

Why God Appoints Suffering for His Servants 109

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 109

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 110

Idon’t know why I am identified with suffering. I guess it is because

suffering, like camping and wealth, is relative. No doubt when people

hear my life story, they imagine themselves in my position and think,

“Wow, he has really suffered.” They can picture themselves in my suffering

much more easily than they can understand the incredible blessings

and benefits that those painful chapters in my life have provided me.

Suffering, like many other events in life, is relative. I offered to take

a friend down to the Amazon to meet my jungle family. Someone overheard

our conversation and confided, “I don’t think that would be such

a good idea. To Kevin, a night at the Hilton is ‘camping out.’”

Wealth is also relative. Years ago when my wife, Ginny, and I lived

in Dallas, our neighbors frequently referred to the rich people living

inside the beltway. Our friends inside the beltway referred to the wealthy

people living in the posh neighborhoods just outside downtown Dallas.

I guess people hear or read about the minor tragedies in my life, and in

relation to their lives it looks like I have suffered. But I compare my life

to the experiences of people I have lived with who are persecuted and

threatened, who die from minor illnesses because they have little or no

access to medical attention, and I think, “Boy, do I have it good.”

A Chinese Christian who heard me speak once asked me if I would

write a tract about suffering for his fellow believers in the Orient. I told

Sovereignty, Suffering, and

the Work of Missions

chapter 5

Stephen F. Saint

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 111

him I would think about it. But when I did, I realized that in comparison

to those Chinese believers I knew very little about the topic.

I do know this: sufferers want to be ministered to by people who

have suffered. When I was a teenager, I knew a family whose son was

terribly burned when he ran into a car and the gas tank on his motorcycle

exploded. In the hospital burn unit he begged his mother to just

let him die. She responded by inviting friends to cheer him up, but he

refused to see anyone. Finally one day there was a knock on his hospital

room door. When his mother opened the door there was a stranger

with hideous scars all over his face and arms standing there.

The mother slammed the door, hoping her son hadn’t seen the man.

But he had, and insisted that his mother let the man in. His mother

resisted, thinking the sight would further discourage her son. Instead of

discouraging the boy, however, that man convinced the boy that there

was reason to live.

People who suffer want people who have suffered to tell them there

is hope. They are justifiably suspicious of people who appear to have lived

lives of ease. There is no doubt in my mind that this is the reason that

Jesus suffered in every way that we do, while he was here. First Peter 2:21

says, “This [your] suffering is all part of what God has called you to.

Christ, who suffered for you, is your example. Follow in his steps” (NLT).

The Reasons for Suffering

The Bible identifies a number of reasons for suffering:

1. God uses suffering as punishment. When David was punished

for numbering the Israelites in 1 Chronicles 21:12, God

gave him three suffering choices: three years of famine, three

months of defeats at the hand of Israel’s enemies, or three

days of pestilence and death at the hands of God’s angel.

2. God also uses suffering to demonstrate his power. I was perplexed

to realize that the poor blind man who begged outside

the temple in John 9 had been blind his whole life just

so Jesus could prove God’s power. That was a lot of suffering

in a society without “Americans with Disabilities Act”

laws.

112 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 112

3. Suffering also builds perseverance and strength of character

as revealed in James 1 and Romans 5. I actually hated the

verses in James 1 that say, “Whenever trouble comes your

way, let it be an opportunity for joy. For when your faith

is tested, your endurance has a chance to grow. So let it

grow. . . .” (James 1:2-4, NLT).

4. Paul revealed in 2 Corinthians 12:7 that God would not take

away his personal suffering caused by a “thorn in the flesh”

because it kept him humble.

The Avoidance of Suffering

In the United States and most other highly developed and industrialized

nations that have been exporters of Christ’s gospel, it is generally

accepted that the avoidance of suffering is a respected primary objective

in life. But in relation to missionary efforts, our lack of suffering is a

great obstacle to our effectiveness in communicating Christ’s plan for

hurting people in third- and fourth-world countries. Suffering people

who think we never suffer are understandably cynical about our ability

to understand them and care for their physical, emotional, and spiritual

hurts.

To be fair, I have to admit that I think there is a great deal of suffering

in the United States. Rich people suffer along with poor people,

just differently. During the Great Depression, poor people weren’t jumping

out of tall buildings; the jumpers were rich people who had just

become poor. We are the richest country the world has ever produced—

ever. And yet our suicide rate and crime rate are extremely high.

Suffering is one of the few aspects of life that everyone gets a shot at.

And you don’t have to be a rocket scientist to figure out that the worst

hurts are the ones you feel.

I remember spending a night in the hospital after having my

appendix removed. I woke up around two o’ clock in the morning when

they put another patient in my room. As the night wore on, he kept

moaning and waking me up. Finally I asked him what could be so terrible

that he couldn’t be quiet and let me get some sleep. He answered,

Mi pierna me duele; Mi pierna me duele.” I turned on the light to see

what about his leg could possibly be hurting so badly. It turned out that

Sovereignty, Suffering, and the Work of Missions 113

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 113

he had just been hit by a car, and they had amputated his badly mangled

leg. He didn’t even know yet that it was gone.

I felt like a schmuck because my worry over the tiny severed

appendage on my intestine made me insensitive to a man who had just

had his whole leg amputated. But my remorse was short-lived because,

despite the significance of his trauma, my tiny operation was the trauma

that impacted me.

Two Painful Chapters

Enough of general statements and the theology of suffering. The best

way to illustrate that suffering offers significant benefits and should not

be resisted is to share two painful chapters from my life. There have been

plenty of others, but these two have been especially significant in giving

me a passion for ministry to hurting people in what we generally refer

to as missions.

When I was five years old my mother called me into her bedroom

and told me that my hero, the man whom I wanted to grow up and be

just like, the man in whom all my dreams and aspirations were centered,

was never coming back to live with us again. It was my dad, and I

remember thinking: but he promised me that he would teach me to fly.

He promised me that. How could he leave? Then Mom said that he had

gone to live with Jesus, and I thought, Oh . . . it was something we all

look forward to, but I couldn’t understand why he didn’t come to take

us with him, why he just left us behind.

It was an exciting time around our house that last Christmas my dad

was home, and I can remember experiencing a great sense of expectation.

Actually, Christmas Day had just passed, the memories of which

are most vivid in my mind. Then I thought we were going to have

another Christmas celebration because these friends of ours—the Elliots,

the McCullys, the Youderians—were coming to our house. I thought:

this is really good; let’s just keep celebrating. But I didn’t understand that

the excitement was for a different reason: my dad and his four friends

were about to try to reach a violent tribe of people in the jungle before

an oil company moved in. The tribe had been trying to defend their territory

by killing the oil company’s employees. So the oil company had

114 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 114

approached the government, explaining that if the country needed oil,

they had better get rid of “this problem.”

Revelation 5:9-10 says that at the end of time, members of every

tribe and nation and tongue will be in God’s presence, and that God is

going to make a royal priesthood of them. These had to be believers. My

dad and his friends understood that and felt compelled to reach these

people before the oil company carried out the solution to their problem.

But it wasn’t fearful compulsion; it was something they were excited

about doing.

My dad and his friends knew that they couldn’t just walk into the

jungle and meet these people; others had tried to do that and failed,

including the oil companies. This tribe killed everyone who had ever ventured

into their territory. What my dad and his friends didn’t know was

that the tribe habitually and rampantly killed its own members. The

homicide rate within the tribe was the highest that anthropologists have

ever studied. More than sixty percent of all the people in this tribe died

as a result of being speared or hacked to pieces with machetes by their

own people. I don’t know a single person in the tribe, similar to me in

age, whose father died of natural causes.

My father and his friends knew that a universal way of showing

friendship is exchanging gifts. Even though they didn’t know how to

exchange gifts with the Waodani, they did know how to give gifts to let

them know that they were wanted. Dad had devised a system of flying

in tight circles so that, from the plane, they could suspend a bucket tied

to a rope that would hang motionless just above the ground. They used

this system to give useful gifts to the tribe. After about the third time,

the Waodani not only took the gifts out of the bucket, but they also put

gifts for us back in. They exchanged gifts in that way for thirteen weeks.

Then Dad found a little sandbar not too far from the village. They

landed there and waited for the people to come—Tuesday, Wednesday,

Thursday. Suddenly on Friday, after the days of just waiting with nothing

happening—plane idle on the sandbar near a little tree house built

to run to if they were attacked—they heard voices from across the river.

Two women and a man stepped out of the forest and walked across the

shallow little river. They spent the day with my dad and his friends as if

it was no big deal. We have a video of that movie film and the still pictures

taken that day. We called it Friendly Friday. It was just so promis-

Sovereignty, Suffering, and the Work of Missions 115

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 115

ing! Dad called my mom and told her what had happened and the word

spread among the five wives. We knew that something exciting was

going on.

On Saturday my dad flew over the little village to see why the man

and two women hadn’t come back, but nobody was in the village. Flying

back from the Domointado River, across the Tewaeno River, and then

to the Awanguno River where they had been landing the plane, he

looked down and saw a whole delegation of naked people on the trail.

So he called my mom and told her the exciting news: “Looks like they’re

going to be here for the early afternoon service.” Then he landed and

told the others, “Hey, they’re on the trail.” Since they’d already had

friendly face-to-face contact, they were so excited.

Three women stepped out of the jungles on the upper end of the

beach. Jim and Pete started walking toward them while Dad and Roger

and Ed hung back; they didn’t want to scare them. Suddenly, members

of the tribe rushed out of the jungles—Gikita with Mincaye, Kimo and

Dyuwi right behind, and Nimongo and Nampa up ahead just a bit—and

they positioned themselves to separate my dad and his friends. Then

Gikita struck out after my father, saying, “I’m going to spear the oldest

one first.” (My dad was the one they recognized from the plane.) One

by one they speared my father and his friends and hacked at them, and

then they did something even worse by their cultural standards—they

took what was left of the bodies and derisively threw them into the river

to be eaten by the fish and turtles.

I didn’t know the details when I was a little boy, but I can tell you,

their deaths still crushed my heart. The incident reshaped my beliefs in

a way that I didn’t anticipate. Before this, I believed what a lot of you

probably believe: when bad things happen, God merely allows them. I

found out the details of my father’s death after my Aunt Rachel died.

During all the years she had lived with the tribe, the death of her brother

and the others was never discussed; she didn’t want them to think she

would seek to avenge those deaths. When Aunt Rachel died, I represented

the family at her burial, and that’s when a lot of answers came

forth. Now that Aunt Rachel was gone, the tribe felt free to talk about

the events leading up to the killings and the “family” conflict that precipitated

the attack.

The death of the five martyred missionaries, and the amazing

116 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 116

change in the Waodani that came about after Aunt Rachel and Elisabeth

Elliott were invited into the tribe to teach them God’s “carvings,” is now

a well-known story. Countless lives have been impacted by it; thousands

of missionaries name it as the reason their hearts were moved to respond

to God’s call. Our family has been blessed by the love and friendship—

kinship—of the Waodani people.

Someone came up to me at a place where I was speaking and said,

“You know, if your father and his four friends had done it differently, they

wouldn’t have had to die.” At first I was repulsed by that suggestion, but

then I realized he was right. They didn’t even have to go to the jungle.

But then, I thought, if I had it to change, I wouldn’t change a thing. I simply

look at the man standing beside me, one of my dearest friends in the

whole world, and I realize that he wouldn’t be here now if my dad and

Roger and Pete and Ed and Jim hadn’t died. We call him Grandfather

Mincaye because he has become a dear member of our family.

God Planned My Dad’s Death

You know what my conclusion is? I don’t think God merely tolerated

my dad’s death. I don’t think he turned away when it was happening. I

think he planned it. Otherwise I don’t think it would have happened.

This was a hard realization for me to come to. I once said that while

speaking at a church, and a man came up afterwards and said, “Don’t

you ever say that again about my God.” Afterward I found these verses

in Acts 2:

“Men of Israel, listen to these words. Jesus the Nazarene, a man

attested to you by God with miracles and wonders and signs which

God performed through him in your midst, just as you yourselves

know, you know he was God. You nailed him to a cross, you godless

people. But he was delivered up to you by the predetermined plan of

God.” (vv. 22-23, AT)

Then I thought: Don’t anybody tell me that this can’t be. If God

could plan the death of his own righteous Son, why couldn’t he plan the

death of my dad?

Sovereignty, Suffering, and the Work of Missions 117

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 117

God Planned My Daughter’s Death

I believe God planned my daughter’s death. In the years prior to her

death, people started asking me to go around and speak, and I realized

that there was a deficiency in my heart and life: I could not see the world

the way God does. Oh, be careful what you pray for. I prayed and

begged God and told Ginny, “I can’t keep doing this. I go out and I’m

speaking from my head to people and it doesn’t work. I can’t keep going.

I can’t speak unless I feel the passion of this.” And so I started praying,

“God, please, please let me have your heart for the hurting world out

there. I see it, and I empathize a little bit but I don’t have a passion for

it.”Now, don’t overrate this. Perhaps a lot of you struggle with the same

thing. I just couldn’t keep going and talking about what I had seen God

do without a passion to share it. And I had no idea if God would give

me such a passion or how he would do it. I’m more mechanical; that’s

what I do well. I fly; it just comes, it’s in the genes, I don’t have to figure

it out—it’s just there. But passion is another story, so I begged God to

let me see his heart.

We have an idea that if we do what God wants us to do, then he

owes us to take the suffering away. I believed that; I don’t believe that

anymore.

Ginny and I had three boys and then we finally had a little girl. I

made her promise me that she’d never grow up; she broke her promise

and went away to college. And then a time of suffering came because

Youth for Christ asked Stephenie, who could play the piano beautifully

as well as the bass guitar, to travel around the world for a year with one

of their groups sharing the gospel. And you know what? It wasn’t worth

it to me; I wanted my daughter home. I knew that some day she would

probably meet a boy and go off. She was tall and slim, and in my eyes,

beautiful. She was Ginny’s bosom friend. She was our baby. She started

traveling around the world, and it was a painful year. But finally the year

was over and she was coming home. Ginny and I met her at the Orlando

airport. Grandfather Mincaye was there too. We had made him a sign

to hold up, Welcome Home, Stephenie, but he couldn’t read so he held

it upside down. He was jumping around, big holes in his ears, wearing

a feather headdress. He wasn’t blending! Stephenie came and saw him

and tried to pretend that she didn’t see us, but Mincaye went up and

118 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 118

grabbed her and started jumping around with her. Then we headed out

for a welcome home party—it was a joyous time.

Later, I passed Stephenie in the hall, and she just leaned on me and

said, “Pop, I love you.” I thought: God, just beam me up right now. Let’s

go at the peak. Does it get any better than this? All of our children are

following you, and Stephenie is home. And Ginny and I—we’ve had a

twenty-seven-year honeymoon. Let’s just quit right now.

A while later, Ginny said, “Steve, Stephenie’s back in her room. Let’s

go back and be with her.” So we ditched everyone else and went back.

Stephenie had a headache and asked me to pray for her. Ginny sat on

the bed and held Stephenie, and I put my arms around those two girls

whom I loved with all my heart, and I started praying.

While I was praying, Stephenie had a massive cerebral hemorrhage.

We rushed to the hospital. I rode in the ambulance while our son Jaime

and Ginny and Mincaye followed us in the car. Grandfather Mincaye

had never seen this type of vehicle with the flashing lights, didn’t understand

why strangers had rushed into the house and grabbed Stephenie

and hurried off with her. Now he saw her at the hospital, lying on a gurney

with a tube down her throat and needles in her arm, and he grabbed

me and said, “Who did this to her?” And I saw a look on his face that

I’d seen before, and I knew that he’d be willing to kill again to save this

granddaughter whom he loved.

I didn’t know what to say. “I don’t know, Mincaye. Nobody is doing

this.”

And just like that, this savage from the jungles grabbed me again

and said, “Babae, don’t you see?”

No, I didn’t see. My heart was absolutely tearing apart; I didn’t

know what was going on.

He said, “Babae, Babae, now I see it well. Don’t you see? God himself

is doing this.”

And I thought, what are you saying?

Mincaye started reaching out to all the people in the emergency

room, saying, “People, people, don’t you see? God, loving Star, he’s taking

her to live with him.” And he said, “Look at me, I’m an old man;

pretty soon I’m going to die too, and I’m going there.” Then he said,

with a pleading look on his face, “Please, please, won’t you follow God’s

Sovereignty, Suffering, and the Work of Missions 119

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 119

trail, too? Coming to God’s place, Star and I will be waiting there to welcome

you.”

Why is it that we want every chapter to be good when God promises

only that in the last chapter he will make all the other chapters make

sense, and he doesn’t promise we’ll see that last chapter here? When

Stephenie was dying, the doctor said, “There’s no hope for recovery

from an injury like this.” I realized that this was either the time to lose

my faith or an opportunity to show the God who gave his only Son to

die for my sin that I love and trust him. And then I watched. I watched

my sweet wife accept this as God’s will and God’s plan. And you know

what God has done through this? He changed my heart. He broke it.

He shredded it. And in the process he helped me see what he sees. I

thought the worst thing that could happen in life was that people would

go into a Christ-less eternity. There’s something worse than that. It is that

our loving heavenly Father, the God and Creator of the universe, is being

separated every day from those he desperately loves, and he will never

be reunited with them again if what this book says is right.

I don’t know what role he has for you, but I know he has a role. His

great passion is expressed in his Great Commission, and he has given it

to messy, wimpy people like you and me. He has made us his ambassadors

of reconciliation.

God’s Megaphone to the World

Mincaye and I traveled with Steven Curtis Chapman as part of a concert

tour back in 2002. Each night after Steve and his band told the story

of how Mincaye and I became family, with video and music, Maemae

Mincaye and I would spend a few minutes speaking personally to the

audience.

One night Mincaye was very intently trying to communicate with

the audience. He very dynamically stated, “Waengongi (Creator God)

does not see it well that we should walk his trail.”

I hesitated to translate what he had just said. That statement directly

contradicted what I believed and knew Mincaye believed. Finally, I went

ahead and translated what Grandfather had said. Fortunately, he

resolved the conflict with one word. He continued, “Waengongi does

120 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 120

not see it well that we should walk his trail alone!” He continued,

“Don’t you think Waengongi loves all of his children?”

If we are going to emulate our Savior, we have to identify with the

people to whom we take his good news. I don’t advocate that we look

for suffering; life brings enough of it on its own. But what I do advocate

is that suffering is an important prerequisite to ministering to hurting

people. Christ took on our likeness and subjected himself to the suffering

that plagues us.

I am convinced that we should not make heroic efforts and expend

vast resources like the rest of our society does to avoid suffering. Not

only would a willingness to experience hurt give us credibility with suffering

people, but it would also give God a special opportunity to prove

his sufficiency to meet our needs. As a wise man said, “God whispers to

us in our pleasures, speaks in our conscience, but shouts in our pains: it

is his megaphone to rouse a deaf world.”1

The poet Martha Snell Nicholson wrote a short poem that expresses

this very eloquently. She wrote:

I stood a mendicant of God before His royal throne

And begged him for one priceless gift, which I could call my own.

I took the gift from out His hand, but as I would depart

I cried, “But Lord this is a thorn and it has pierced my heart.

This is a strange, a hurtful gift, which Thou hast given me.”

He said, “My child, I give good gifts and gave My best to thee.”

I took it home and though at first the cruel thorn hurt sore,

As long years passed I learned at last to love it more and more.

I learned He never gives a thorn without this added grace,

He takes the thorn to pin aside the veil which hides His face.2

Sovereignty, Suffering, and the Work of Missions 121

1 C. S. Lewis, The Problem of Pain (New York: Macmillan, 1962), 93.

2 Martha Snell Nicholson, “The Thorn.”

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 121

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 122

We serve the sovereign God who will accomplish his will no matter

what. We find this truth all the way back to creation. When we

were created, we were in covenant relationship with God. This was the

covenant of creation (others call it the covenant of works). According

to the terms of the covenant, obedience would result in blessing. We

would experience pleasure as the sovereign will of God was accomplished

through us. However, if we broke the covenant, we would be

under its curse, and we would experience pain as the sovereign will of

God was accomplished through us.

We know from the biblical text that we broke the covenant. The fall

was the result, and the path of pain was the outcome. By eating from

the forbidden tree, humans were, in essence, attempting to replace God

as ultimate judge of good and evil. God said, “You are free to eat from

any tree in the garden; but you must not eat from the tree of the knowledge

of good and evil” (Gen. 2:16-17, NIV). It wasn’t that they didn’t

understand the nature of good and evil. The real temptation was: what

would be the basis for judging good and evil? Would it be the Word of

God or human opinion?

What happens just before we fall to temptation? We decide that the

thing we desire is good for us. In essence, we reenact the fall every time

we give in to temptation. When Adam and Eve ate the forbidden fruit,

they were rejecting the Word of God as the basis of life. This was an

The Sovereignty of God

and Ethnic-Based Suffering

chapter 6

Carl F. Ellis, Jr.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 123

example of creature-ism—the creature attempts to judge the Creator by

creaturely standards.

Instead of immediately sending us to the lake of fire, God showed

us grace. He gave us another covenant, the covenant of salvation (the

covenant of grace as some call it). The covenant of salvation was

designed to deliver us from the curse of the broken covenant of creation.

Until salvation was fully applied we would still experience many of the

effects of the fall. Among these effects would be human power differentials.

These power differentials would lead to human power struggles.

This is the basis of the ethnic-based strife and suffering.

Let us make some observations about power. The Bible tells us that

God is all-powerful, and yet there are no power struggles between the

persons of the godhead. Why? Because the Father, the Son, and the Holy

Spirit are one. Before the fall Adam and Eve had significant power of

dominion, yet there were no power struggles between them. Why?

Because they were one. Their oneness was like God’s oneness only on a

human level. This is a perspective on what it means to be in the image

of God. Adam was the head, but he was the first among equals.

After the fall their oneness was broken. This is where we began to

have our problems. We began to think individualistically, and this led to

self-centeredness. Look at what Adam told God after God confronted

him about his sin: “The man said, ‘The woman whom you gave to be

with me, she gave me fruit of the tree, and I ate’” (Gen. 3:12). The man

and the woman began to seek dominion and dominance over each other,

and inequality was the result.

Thus, the first manifestation of human power struggles was seen in

the marriage relationship. When God spoke to the woman in Genesis

3:16, he said, “Your desire will be for your husband, and he shall rule

over you.” When God said “Your desire shall be for your husband,” he

was not speaking of the “come hither” kind of desire. The word desire

here is the exact same word God used when he confronted Cain about

his sin. He said, “Sin . . . desires to have you, but you must master it”

(Gen. 4:7, NIV).

Because of the loss of oneness, power struggles infected the marriage

relationship. Eventually it infected all human relationships. Thus,

human inequality became universal, not only between individuals like

Cain and Abel but also between people groups. It makes no difference

124 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 124

how you define people groups, whether ethnically, culturally, linguistically,

or generationally. There will be inequalities among them and

power struggles between them.

Another result of the fall was persecution.We see this in the struggle

between the seed of the woman and the seed of the serpent. God said to

the serpent, “I will put enmity between you and the woman, and between

your seed and her seed. He will crush your head, and you will strike his

heel” (Gen. 3:15, AT). The “seed of the woman” refers to the coming of

the Savior, and the “seed of the serpent” refers to Satan himself; however,

we often fail to see the collective application of this. From this perspective,

“the seed of the woman” refers to God’s covenant people, and the

“seed of the serpent” refers to the enemies of God. God’s enemies would

persecute and seek to destroy God’s people—their heel will be struck. But,

God’s people would successfully resist this persecution. The people of God

would have a power-struggle disadvantage on a human level, yet by God’s

grace they would persevere and ultimately prevail over God’s enemies. The

enemy’s head would be crushed. This struggle would be painful.

Persecution has become a significant manifestation of human power

struggles, and it continues to this day.

The Mystery of Suffering

The book of Job deals with the relationship between human suffering

and divine justice. This is what the scholars call theodicy. Most of us

assume a one-to-one relationship between our suffering and our sin, or

between prosperity and obedience. This is what Job’s friends were trying

to say. They were articulating old evangelical clichés: “There must

be some sin in your life, brother.” Job repeatedly answered, “What else

is new!” The account of Job clearly demonstrates that the bad things

that happen to us are not necessarily related to our sin, anymore than

the good things that happen to us are related to our righteousness, of

which we have none (Isa. 64:6). The account of Job shows us that God

will not abandon those who suffer for his sake. Job had a for-realness”

about his pain. Likewise, God wants us to have that same “for-realness.”

In many ways suffering is a mystery. I take comfort in what Francis

Schaeffer told me many times: “We only see the debit side of the ledger

now. We don’t see the credit side yet. When we see the whole ledger we

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 125

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 125

will say, ‘Oh, why didn’t I see it that way before?’” This is why the Bible

tells us to see now by faith. Though suffering is a mystery to us, it is not

a mystery to God. Mysteries may be painful, but they should not perplex

us. To God, there is no mystery. He is satisfied because he sees the

whole ledger. We will also be satisfied when we see things from God’s

perspective. Till then, we must learn to be satisfied with God’s satisfaction.

If we do, we will have peace.

The Basis of Suffering

The cause of suffering is sin. This much is obvious. Suffering from sin

has two general categories. First, there are the apparently random effects

of sin—storms, earthquakes, floods, tsunamis, wildfires, etc. Then there

are the direct results of sin, which come in two categories—ungodliness

and oppression. Ungodliness involves sinning and suffering one’s own

consequences. (Examples are carelessness, laziness, recklessness, irresponsibility,

and things like that.) Oppression involves sinning and forcing

others to suffer the consequences, or imposing our sin on others. God

says a lot about oppression in Scripture.

Let us make some observations. Oppression is sin plus power. If

you’ve ever been in a dominant position over people, and you sin against

them, you have oppressed them. The power to oppress doesn’t require

a particular skin color, ethnicity, or economic status.

I’ll never forget when God opened my eyes to this. God has given

me the privilege of raising two children, a boy and a girl. I’m very proud

of them. They both love the Lord. When my girl was little, it was my

job to braid her hair. I must admit, I became quite skilled at it. As a

father, I was in a dominant position over her. One Sunday morning, her

hair was looking particularly good. When I was almost finished, she

said, “Daddy, the braid is too tight. It hurts!” Of course it was not my

intention to inflict pain on her, yet pain was the result.

Because I was in a dominant position over her I just dismissed her

pain. “Oh Nikki, it doesn’t hurt.”

Then she repeated, “Daddy, it hurts!” And then she started to cry.

As her tears began to flow, I began to realize what I had done: I

oppressed my own daughter when I denied her reality.

I strongly disagree with those who narrowly define oppression only

126 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 126

in terms of race. Though racial oppression is real, oppression itself is

universal.

Because oppression is sin plus power, it is driven by power struggles.

How does oppression affect individual victims? Based on my observations,

it increases their proportion of bad choices and decreases their

proportion of good choices. For example, let’s suppose each of us has

ten choices to make in life. If we are not oppressed, we would expect

eight of the ten choices to be good ones and two to be bad. However,

oppression might cause eight choices to be bad and two to be good.

Given the law of averages, how likely is one to make bad choices? It

should not surprise us that oppressed people end up in prison in higher

proportions.

As we mentioned earlier, one of the foundations of oppression is

creature-ism, which is judging the Creator by the standard of the creature.

Creature-ism has several applications:

me-ism—judging others by the standard of myself

cultural imperialism—judging other cultures by the standard

of my culture

sexism—judging the other gender by the standard of my

gender

racism—judging the other races by the standard of my race

ethno-centrism—judging other people groups by the standard

of my people group

If I am guilty of any of those, I will see others as inferior. Why? Because

no one else can be me as well as I can be me; no other culture can be my

culture as well as my culture can; no other race can be my race as well as

my race can. When we use ourselves as the standard of judgment instead

of the Word of God, we begin to think of others as inferior, not worthy

of our respect. Power differentials serve to aggravate the situation.

Manifestations

Israel was plagued by ethnocentrism. God repeatedly showed them they

were to be Jews because they were chosen. To be a Jew was a response

to God’s saving grace. But they foolishly assumed that they were chosen

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 127

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 127

because they were Jews. They assumed they would always have the status

of dominant culture in the kingdom of God. And they did not tolerate

anything that would contradict this notion.

Let us look at Acts 13:14-48 from this perspective. In this passage

we see that Paul and his companions went to Pisidian Antioch. On the

Sabbath day they entered the synagogue and sat down, and after the

reading of some of the Scriptures, the brothers in the synagogue asked

if they had a message of encouragement: “Standing up, Paul motioned

with his hand and said: ‘Men of Israel and you Gentiles who worship

God, listen to me!’” (v. 16, NIV).

He began to review Israel’s history: from Egypt to the conquest of

Canaan (vv. 18-28); from the judges to King David (vv. 20-22); then to

the Savior, Jesus Christ, descended from David and greater than all the

prophets (vv. 23-25). We would expect resistance to Paul’s message, but

none materialized. Paul continued: Jerusalem failed to recognize Jesus

and condemned him to death. Yet this fulfilled the Scripture and God

raised Jesus from the dead (vv. 26-31). Still there was no negative reaction

to all this new theology. Paul explained that the resurrection of Jesus

Christ was the fulfillment of Scripture and that Jesus is greater than King

David (vv. 32-37). Yet they did not react.

Then Paul stated that forgiveness of sin comes through Jesus, and

justification cannot come by the works of the law of Moses (vv. 38-

39). Even this did not upset them. Paul wrapped up his message:

“Take care that what the prophets have said does not happen to you:

‘Look, you scoffers, wonder and perish. I am going to do something

in your days that you would never believe, even if someone told you’”

(vv. 40-41).

Notice the reaction to the message: “As Paul and Barnabas were

leaving the synagogue, the people invited them to speak further about

these things on the next Sabbath” (v. 42). So far the situation looked

promising, but watch what happened next: On the next Sabbath day,

almost the whole city gathered to hear the Word of the Lord. When the

Jews saw the crowds they were filled with jealousy and began to talk

abusively against what Paul was saying (v. 44). The Jews took the

response of the whole town as a threat to their position of dominance

when it came to the things of God. This was a manifestation of power

struggles.

128 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 128

A similar thing happened in Acts 21–22:

• On his visit to the temple in Jerusalem Paul was spotted,

seized, and accused of teaching against Israel and the law.

Furthermore, he was accused of defiling the temple by bringing

Greeks into it. (21:17-29)

• Paul was dragged out of the temple and almost killed by mob

violence. The commander of the Roman troops saved Paul by

taking him into custody. (21:30-36)

• Paul was able to get permission to address the crowd.

(21:37-40)

• Paul introduced himself as a Jew. He showed forth his pedigree:

born and raised in Tarsus, taught by Gamaliel, persecuted

the church in his zeal for God. (22:1-5)

• Paul explained his encounter with Jesus and his dramatic conversion

on the Damascus Road: “Saul! Saul! Why do you persecute

me?”

“Who are you, Lord?” I asked.

“I am Jesus of Nazareth, whom you are persecuting.” (22:6-13)

The crowd did not react. Then Paul replied to the Lord, “These men

know that I went from one synagogue to another to imprison and beat

those who believe in you. And when the blood of your martyr Stephen

was shed I stood there giving my approval and guarding the clothes of

those who were killing him” (22:19-20).

There was still no reaction, but watch this: “Then the Lord said to

me, ‘Go, I will send you far away to the Gentiles.’ The crowd listened

to Paul until he said this. Then they raised their voices and shouted, ‘Rid

the earth of him! He’s not fit to live’” (vv. 21-22).

The Jewish crowd was willing to deal with all that testimony

about Jesus. But when testifying to the Gentiles came into play, the

dominance of the Jews was threatened. They got upset. The violence

of the crowd became so intense that Paul had to be rescued by Roman

soldiers (vv. 23-24).

Ethnic-based suffering comes out of these power struggles, out of

dominant/sub-dominant dynamics. There is a lot of talk today about

reconciliation. But, if we ignore the dominant/sub-dominant dynamics,

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 129

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 129

we will never bridge the gap. We will wonder why racial reconciliation

does not seem to work, and people will continue to suffer. These passages

in Acts should give us insights as to why.

Dimensions

One of the results of oppression is marginalization. Marginalization

happens when that which is valid is regarded as invalid merely because

it differs from the prevailing standards of creature-ism. Thus, people

who fit this description are relegated to a position of insignificance,

devalued importance, minor influence, or diminished power. How does

marginalization affect human interaction?

Every society has a dominant culture and at least one sub-dominant

culture. Each of these has a corresponding cultural agenda and intracultural

consciousness. Those in the dominant culture tend not to realize

they have a culture, and those in the sub-dominant culture know very

well that everybody has a culture.

All in the sub-dominant culture are exposed to the dominant cultural

agenda. But few in the dominant culture are even aware that there

is a sub-dominant cultural agenda. Therefore, to those in the dominant

culture, the concerns of the sub-dominant culture tend to be marginalized.

We can define these dominant and sub-dominant cultures in terms

of race, generation, gender, geography, language, etc.

This begs the question: who is going to show the world how to deal

with these kind of power differential dynamics? It must be the body of

Christ. There are four dimensions of marginalization: (1) relational

(face-to-face) marginalization—like what I did with my daughter; (2)

systemic marginalization, which is marginalization by way of time-honored

conventions and protocols; (3) marginalization by design, which is

intentional marginalization resulting from subjugation; and (4)

marginalization by default, which is marginalization resulting from a

lack of either real or perceived power.

When you pair these four dimensions in all the possible combinations,

you come out with the window of marginalization (Figure 1). The

top two panes of the window are relational; the bottom two panes, systemic;

the left two panes, marginalization by design; the right two,

marginalization by default.

130 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 130

One thing that exacerbates ethnic-based suffering in the world today is

the lack of a full understanding of marginalization. For example, we

tend to think of only one manifestation—relational by design—which

we find in the upper left-hand quadrant. We don’t think much about

what’s in the other three quadrants. If we in the church are going to have

something prophetic to say to the issue of ethnic-based suffering, we

must deal with all four panes of the window.

Every subdominant group has a distinct paradigm for marginalization.

For example, the African-American experience has largely been a

struggle against racism and its effects—an application of creature-ism.

Therefore, racism is regarded as the paradigm for all marginalization.

We may know that marginalization does not ultimately require a racist

motive. However, from an African-American perspective, marginalization

is assumed to have a racist motive.

Anglo-Americans without this paradigm tend to view African-

American protest against marginalization as “playing the race card.”

African-Americans, on the other hand, may view Anglo-Americans’

protest as being in denial. When this happens we will speak past each

other, because we do not understand that marginalization is the foundation

of ethnic-based suffering. The theology of the Christian community

has been weak in that area. If we are going to be a prophetic voice against

marginalization, we will need to address it with some serious theology.

Blossoms

A young lady named Camara Phyllis Jones wrote a fascinating article

called “Levels of Racism: A Theoretical Framework and a Gardener’s

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 131

Figure 1: The Window of Marginalization

F

By Design

Driven by Subjugation

By Default

Driven by Dominance

Relational

Systemic

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 131

Tale.”1 I am not going to review the whole article, but I will share

some of her insightful illustrations. According to Ms. Jones, there are

three levels of racism: (1) institutionalized, (2) personally mediated, and

(3) internalized.

Jones bought a house in a major city, and on the front porch were

two flower boxes. One already had dirt in it, and the other was empty.

She did not realize the existing soil was poor and rocky. Because she

wanted to plant flowers in both boxes, she filled the empty box with rich

potting soil and planted six flower seeds in each box. The growth of the

flowers in the boxes showed her how racism develops and functions.

To illustrate her point, Jones supposed the following: (1) the gardener

decided to plant flowers yielding red blossoms in one box and

flowers yielding pink blossoms in the other; (2) she knows which box

has the rich potting soil and which has the poor soil; (3) the gardener

prefers red blossoms over pink.

In this case, the gardener would plant seeds for red blossoms in the

rich soil and seeds for pink blossoms in the poor soil. All six seeds sprout

in the rich soil. The three strongest seeds grew tall. The weaker seeds

grew to middling height. In the poor soil, only the strongest seeds grew,

but only to middling height (Figure 2).

This is how she illustrates institutionalized racism. It starts with

what she calls an initial historical insult—the decision was made to plant

the red flowers in the better soil. It is carried on by structural barriers

the two boxes separate the two soils. It involves inaction in the face of

132 The Purposes of God in Suffering

Figure 2: Institutionalized Racism

F

• Initial historical insult

• Structural barriers

• Inaction in face of need

• Societal norms

• Biological determinism

• Unearned privilege

POOR

ROCKY

SOIL

RICH

POTTING

SOIL

R

1 Camara Phyllis Jones, “Levels of Racism: A Theoretical Framework and a Gardener’s Tale,”

American Journal of Public Health 90 (August 2000): 1212-15.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 132

need—the poor, rocky soil needs fertilizer, but “it does not matter

because they are just pink flowers anyway.” It reflects societal norms.

Everybody knows that if you have sick plants, you don’t waste your time

on them. Your best efforts should be directed to the best plants.

Institutionalized racism also involves biological determinism (the red

blossoms are considered superior to the pink blossoms). Finally, it

involves unearned privilege (the red flower seeds are planted in the good

soil, but they did not earn this privilege).

Ms. Jones illustrates personally mediated racism in the following

way. The weak pink blossoms and the strong red ones are about to produce

pollen. However, the gardener does not want good, strong plants

to be pollinated by obviously weak, inferior ones. So the gardener will

pluck the pink blossoms off before they can pollinate. As a result, the

weak plants will wither and die (Figure 3).

This is equivalent to relational marginalization by design. Thus, personally

mediated racism is intentional and unintentional. It involves acts

of commission and acts of omission. It maintains the structural barriers,

in this case the two different soils. It is also condoned by societal norms.

After all, everybody knows the weak blossoms are plucked off before

they can pollinate.

The third level is the most devastating—internalized racism. In this

case, the “pink blossoms” themselves begin to believe that “red pollen”

is superior. When people are marginalized long enough, when people are

under the yoke of oppression long enough, they begin to believe in their

own inferiority. This is what makes internalized racism so tragic.

Suppose a bee carrying pollen was to land on one of the pink blos-

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 133

Figure 3: Personally Mediated Racism

F

• Intentional

• Unintentional

• Acts of Commission

• Acts of Omission

• Maintains structural barriers

• Condoned by social norms

RICH

POTTING

SOIL

R

POOR

ROCKY

SOIL

P

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 133

soms. What kind of pollen would it prefer: pink or red? It would say,

“Stop! I prefer red pollen. I don’t want any of that inferior pink pollen!”

Why this response? Because it believes in its own inferiority (Figure 4).

The pain of ethnic-based suffering is bad enough. It is devastating when

they begin to think of themselves as inferior, not deserving respect.

Thus, internalized racism reflects the system of privileges and societal

values. It erodes the individual sense of value and undermines collective

action. The pink flowers are so convinced that they are inferior

that they begin to despise each other. Pink-on-pink crime becomes a

problem.

Let me share with you two biblical examples of internalized oppression.

They both happened while the Hebrews were under the yoke of

Egyptian slavery.

The First Example of Internalized Oppression

Most of us know the story of how Moses, a Hebrew, grew up in

Pharaoh’s palace (“the big house”). Contrary to the depiction of Moses

in Cecil B. deMille’s movie The Ten Commandments, the biblical text

indicates that Moses’ Egyptian mother never hid his true identity from

him. The Hebrews in Goshen (“the hood”) evidently were aware of who

Moses was also.

One day, after he had grown up, Moses decided to go to the “hood”

and hang out—to “kick it” with the brothers (Ex. 2:11-14). He saw a

134 The Purposes of God in Suffering

Figure 4: Internalized Racism

F

• Reflects systems of privilege

• Reflects social values

• Erodes Individual sense of value

• Undermines collective action

Stop!

I prefer

red

Pollen!!

D

RICH

POTTING

SOIL

P

POOR

ROCKY

SOIL

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 134

fellow Hebrew being brutally beaten by an Egyptian. Moses intervened,

and in the struggle he killed the Egyptian.

He returned to the “hood” the next day and saw two Hebrews fighting.

He said to the one in the wrong, “Why are you hitting your fellow

Hebrew?” This man replied, “Who made you ruler and judge over us? Are

you thinking of killing me as you killed the Egyptian?”(Ex. 2:14, NIV).

If we do not understand internalized oppression, we will miss one

of the subtle things that God shows us. After four hundred years of slavery

and humiliation, the Hebrews had come to believe they were inferior;

they had contempt for themselves. Therefore, if Moses had been an

Egyptian, the angry Hebrew would have respected him, but the man in

the wrong knew Moses was Hebrew, so he totally disrespected him. He

asked, “Are you thinking of killing me like you killed the Egyptian?”

Notice he didn’t say, “your fellow Egyptian.” In other words, the man

was saying, “Who do you think you are? You’re still a Hebrew.” In those

days Hebrew was a derogatory term.

The Second Example of Internalized Oppression

When God appeared to Moses on Mount Sinai, God told him to go to

the Pharaoh and say, “The LORD, the God of the Hebrews, has met with

us. Let us take a three-day journey into the desert to offer sacrifices to

the LORD our God” (Ex. 3:18, NIV). Perhaps one of the reasons the children

of Israel complained and murmured against God was because he

identified with them; in their minds, any God who would identify with

the Hebrews had to be inferior. Thus, when Moses was overdue returning

from the mountaintop, the Hebrews quickly made an idol and

wanted to return to Egypt (Ex. 32:1-9).

God’s Awareness of Suffering

Isaiah 53:3 (NIV) says the suffering Servant “was despised and rejected

by men, a man of sorrows, and familiar with suffering.” Mary and

Martha were overcome with grief at the death of Lazarus. Jesus knew

that he was going to resurrect Lazarus, but he identified with their grief

and wept with them (John 11:33). If we follow Jesus, we too should be

in touch with the sorrow of those in pain and the suffering of the

oppressed.

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 135

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 135

Listen to what God says to King Jehoiakim in Jeremiah 22:3, 15-16.

This is what the LORD says, “Do what is just and right. Rescue from

the hand of his oppressor the one who has been robbed.” (v. 3a)

Remember, people were robbed, not only by thugs, but by the corrupt

legal system.

Do no wrong or violence to the alien, the fatherless or the widow, and

do not shed innocent blood in this place. (v. 3b)

That has application across the board. And then he says:

Does it make you a king to have more and more cedar? (v. 15a)

In other words, is “bling-bling” the thing?

“Did not your father have food and drink? He did what was right and

just, so all went well with him. He defended the cause of the poor and

needy, and so all went well. Is that not what it means to know me?

declares the LORD. (vv. 15b-16, NIV)

Daniel understood this perspective when he advised Nebuchadnezzar:

“Therefore, O king, be pleased to accept my advice: Renounce your

sins by doing what is right, and your wickedness by being kind to

the oppressed. It may be that then your prosperity will continue.”

(Dan. 4:27, NIV)

The issue here was not whether or not the king had quiet times or said

grace before he ate.

How Should We Respond to Suffering?

According to Cornelius Van Til, we are called to restrain sin and destroy

the consequences of sin in this world as much as possible:

It is our duty not only to seek to destroy evil in ourselves and in

our fellow Christians, but it is our further duty to seek to destroy

evil in all our fellow men. It may be, humanly speaking, hopeless

136 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 136

in some instances that we should succeed in bringing them to

Christ. This does not absolve us, however, from seeking to

restrain their sins to some extent for this life. We must be active

first of all in the field of special grace, but we also have a task to

perform with respect to the destruction of evil in the field of common

grace.

Still further we must note that our task with respect to the

destruction of evil is not done if we have sought to fight sin itself everywhere

we see it. We have the further obligation to destroy the consequences

of sin in this world as far as we can. We must do good to all

men, especially to those of the household of faith. To help relieve

something of the sufferings of the creatures of God is our privilege and

our task.2

An aspect of restraining evil involves seeking to minimize the dominant/

sub-dominant dynamics in human relationships in general and

within the body of Christ in particular. We may not be able to do a lot

about the consequences of sin in the fallen world, but we can certainly

do something about it within the household of faith.

Remember what the apostle James says:

My brothers, as believers in our glorious Lord Jesus Christ, don’t show

favoritism. Suppose a man comes into your meeting wearing a gold

ring and fine clothes [the bling-bling], and a poor man in shabby

clothes also comes in. If you show special attention to the man wearing

fine clothes and say, “Here’s a good seat for you,” but say to the

poor man, “You stand there” or “Sit on the floor by my feet,” have

you not discriminated among yourselves and become judges with evil

thoughts?” (James 2:1-4, NIV)

Being sensitive to the cultural, core concerns of sub-dominant people

groups is an application of this passage. By core concerns, I mean lifecontrolling

and life-defining concerns. The core concerns of the dominant

culture tend to revolve around preservation of the status quo, while

the concerns of the sub-dominant culture revolve around changing the

status quo.

I used to play King of the Mountain when I was a young boy. I am

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 137

2 Cornelius Van Til, Christian Theistic Ethics, vol. 3 of In Defense of the Faith (Nutley, N.J.:

Presbyterian and Reformed, 1977), 87.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 137

sure many of you men used to play this game also. One of us would

stand on top of the hill, and the other players would struggle to push

him off and replace him. Whoever succeeded would become the new

king and the one to knock off the hill. Who would be the most conservative

player in the game? Who would most want to preserve the status

quo? The king, of course. Why? Because he was in the dominant

position. His attitude was, “let there be tranquility,” while everybody

else clamored for self-empowerment by seeking to be king. When we

played this game, we never thought of race or ethnicity, which shows

that these dominant/sub-dominant dynamics transcend all peoplegroup

categories.

These dynamics speak to the issue of cultural diversity. Diversity is

not just a matter of clapping our hands on “one-and-three” or “twoand-

four.” It also involves whether we look at things from a dominant

or sub-dominant perspective. The Bible has much to say about power

differentials. If we understand the issue of ethnic-based suffering from

the perspective of power differentials, our insights will be light-years

ahead of those the world offers.

Perhaps our inability to model solutions to this issue comes

from having lost the doxological dimension of spirituality. What

should distinguish the body of Christ is gratitude to God for his saving

grace. This gratitude should be characterized by two expressions.

The first is faith, which is our response of trusting Christ and

his saving grace. The second expression is works, the resulting

demonstration of our faith and thanksgiving to Christ for his saving

grace.

These two expressions of gratitude should be empowered by two

motivations. The first is a salvific motivation for faith. By salvific” I

mean an ongoing, strong desire to grow in our knowledge and experience

of God’s salvation. The second motivation is a doxological motivation

for works. By “doxological” I mean an ongoing strong desire to

show the excellence of God’s glory.

The relationship between these dimensions can be seen in the

“Window of Practical Spirituality” (Figure 5).

138 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 138

When our motivation is salvific, faith has high value; when our motivation

is doxological, works have high value. This is why Jesus said, “Let

your light shine before others, so that they may see your good works and

give glory to your Father who is in heaven” (Matt. 5:16). This is a doxological

statement.

We do faith fairly well, but we don’t do works well at all. Why?

Because we have lost the doxological motivation in spirituality. Maybe

it is time for a new reformation. The first Reformation rediscovered the

salvific dimension. The new reformation will rediscover the doxological

dimension. Doxology was what distinguished the Reformed movement.

But somehow we’ve lost it. This is why our works have become shabby.

This is why we have not had a strong prophetic voice regarding issues

like ethnic-based suffering. And the world is poorer for it.

The People of God and Suffering

Since the fall, God has worked through his people as a sub-dominant

group. Have you ever thought of yourself this way? As far as the world

system is concerned, we in the body of Christ are a sub-dominant people

group. Remember, Jesus our leader said, “My kingdom is not of this

world system” (John 18:36, AT). God reminds us to consider ourselves

strangers and aliens in the context of this world system.

By faith Abraham obeyed when he was called to go out to a place that

he was to receive as an inheritance. And he went out, not knowing

where he was going. By faith he went to live in the land of promise, as

in a foreign land, living in tents with Isaac and Jacob, heirs with him

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 139

Figure 5: The Window of Practical Spirituality

Salvific

Faith

Expression

Motivation

Works

High

Value

High

Value

Doxological

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 139

of the same promise. For he was looking forward to the city that has

foundations, whose designer and builder is God. (Heb. 11:8-10)

Today, the whole world is the Promised Land, and God calls us to be

strangers and aliens like Abraham:

All these people were still living by faith when they died. . . . They

admitted that they were aliens and strangers on earth. . . . They were

longing for a better country, a heavenly one. Therefore God is not

ashamed to be called their God, for he has prepared a city for them.

(Heb. 11:13, 16, NIV)

Peter refers to the elect as strangers in this world: “Since you call on a

Father who judges each man’s work impartially, live your lives as

strangers here in reverent fear” (1 Pet. 1:17, NIV). Again Peter says:

“Dear friends, I urge you, as aliens and strangers in the world, to abstain

from sinful desires, which war against your soul” (1 Pet. 2:11, NIV).

As strangers and aliens, we in the body of Christ should have no real

vested interest in the world system as it exists. We should be completely

focused on our sovereign God and his kingdom. We are called to be

change-agents for the kingdom in this world. Thus, to identify with suffering

should be as natural as breathing. Ethnic-based suffering should

be a rare occurrence within the body of Christ. Indeed, we have a long

way to go.

We have lost the concept of what it means to be the worldwide

church. Christians do things in this country that directly hurt and harm

our fellow Christians in other parts of the world, especially the Muslim

world. We should be champions of kingdom empowerment and kingdom

transformation. Israel, the Old Testament church, was to be a community

marked by righteousness, social justice, and compassion for the

oppressed. And these covenant requirements also apply to the church,

the New Testament Israel. When Jesus said, “Let your light shine”

(Matt. 5:16), it was against the backdrop of these same covenant

requirements. Isaiah says:

Is not this the kind of fasting I have chosen: to loose the chains of injustice

and untie the cords of the yoke, to set the oppressed free and break

every yoke? Is it not to share your food with the hungry and to pro-

140 The Purposes of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 140

vide the poor wanderer with shelter—when you see the naked, to

clothe him, and not to turn away from your own flesh and blood? Then

your light will break forth like the dawn. . . . (Isa. 58:6-8, NIV)

As the downtrodden looked to Christ in the first century, so should they

be able to look to the body of Christ today. But we must let our light

shine. God is calling us to model what it means to be a people without

ethnic-based suffering.

What is the purpose of ethnicity anyway? We get a glimpse of this

in Haggai 2:7 (NIV), “I will shake all nations, and the desired of all

nations will come, and I will fill this house with glory,” says the LORD

Almighty. The “desired of the nations” is the best the nations have to

offer. All people groups have a unique contribution to make to the glory

of God. We see the fulfillment of this in Revelation 7:9-10:

After this I looked, and behold, a great multitude that no one could

number, from every nation, from all tribes and peoples and languages,

standing before the throne and before the Lamb, clothed in white

robes, with palm branches in their hands, and crying out with a loud

voice, “Salvation belongs to our God who sits on the throne, and to

the Lamb!”

May God give us the grace to glorify him by discipling the nations. May

God give us the grace to disciple the nations by demonstrating the true

meaning of ethnicity rather than imitating the world with ethnic power

struggles, marginalization, and oppression. We need to glorify God by

being on the vanguard of spiritual unity with ethnic diversity.

Yes, there is ethnic-based suffering. Yes, we can understand it. Yes,

by grace we can make a difference to the glory of God.

The Sovereignty of God and Ethnic-Based Suffering 141

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 141

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 142

Part 3:

The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 143

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 144

How does God meet you in trouble, loss, disability, and pain? You

probably already know the “right answer.” He does not immediately

intervene to make everything all better. Yet he continually intervenes,

according to gracious purposes, working both in you and in what

afflicts you. If you’ve read Psalms, if you’ve heard a sermon on the second

half of Romans 8, if you’ve worked through 1 Peter in a Bible study,

if you’ve read the earlier chapters of this book, then you’ve got the gist

already.

How does God’s grace engage your sufferings? We may know the

right answer. And yet we don’t know it. It is a hard answer. But we make

it sound like a pat answer. God sets about a long slow answering. But

we try to make it a quick fix. His answer insists on being lived out over

time and into the particulars. We act as if just saying the right words

makes it so. God’s answer insists on changing you into a different kind

of person. But we act as if some truth, principle, strategy, or perspective

might simply be incorporated into who we already are. God personalizes

his answer on hearts with an uncanny flexibility. But we turn it into

a formula: “If you just believe _________. If you just do _________. If

you just remember _________.” No important truth ever contains the

word “just” in the punch line.

How does God’s grace meet you in your sufferings? We can make

the right answer sound old hat, but I guarantee this: God will surprise

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings

chapter 7

David Powlison

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 145

you. He will make you stop. You will struggle. He will bring you up

short. You will hurt. He will take his time. You will grow in faith and

in love. He will deeply delight you. You will find the process harder than

you ever imagined—and better. Goodness and mercy will follow you all

the days of your life (Ps. 23:6). No matter how many times you’ve heard

it, no matter how long you’ve known it, no matter how well you can

say it, God’s answer will come to mean something better than you could

ever imagine.

Significant Suffering

Think of this chapter as a workshop. You have to put yourself into it in

order to get something out of it. Insert your own story into what is said.

Walk it out—on the margins of these pages, when you put the book

down, when you pray, when you talk with your best friend tomorrow.

The title of the chapter might have tipped you off: I’m not going to discuss

the general topic of God and suffering. Instead, we will consider

how God’s grace enters your sufferings.

What is the most significant experience of suffering that you have

gone through? That you are now going through?

What has happened? How did it affect you? How did your life change?

Don’t rush on. Pull out a pen or pencil. Take five or ten minutes. Ponder.

Remember.Write. You are responsible for half of this chapter! If you do

your part well, it will be the better half.

Let me prime the pump a bit more. Perhaps one catastrophic event

leapt to mind. But as you thought further, maybe something else pressed

forward into consciousness. Perhaps the searing moment was not as significant

as a difficult and disappointing relationship that lasted a long,

long time. There are many kinds of significant suffering. It’s no accident

that James mentions “various trials” (1:2) within which God works. He

invites you to consider the variety of life-altering afflictions, and then to

146 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 146

make it personal. Nobody suffers in general. Each person suffers in some

particular way. Put your particulars on the table.

What marked you? What most changed you? More specifically,

what marked you for good? Profound good in our lives often emerges

in a crucible of significant suffering. Jesus himself “learned obedience

through what he suffered” (Heb. 5:8). Often faith and love shine most

clearly, simply, and courageously in a dark place. And what marked you

for bad? Often our typical sins emerge in reaction to betrayal, loss, or

pain. Hammered by some evil, we discover the evils in our own hearts

(Rom. 12:17). And perhaps most often, in the hands of our kind and

purposeful Father, the bad and the good both come out. A trial brings

out what is most wrong in you, and God brings about what is most right

as he meets you and works with you (Ps. 119:67). The endurance of faith

is one of the Spirit’s finest fruits—and you only learn to endure when you

must live through something hard.

“How Firm a Foundation . . .”

Hold that significant suffering in one hand. In the other hand, hold a

wise old hymn. Listen to God’s grace speaking in the words of “How

Firm a Foundation”:

How firm a foundation, you saints of the Lord,

is laid for your faith in his excellent Word!

What more can he say than to you he has said,

to you who for refuge to Jesus have fled?

“Fear not, I am with you, O be not dismayed;

for I am your God, and will still give you aid;

I’ll strengthen you, help you, and cause you to stand,

upheld by my righteous, omnipotent hand.

“When through the deep waters I call you to go,

the rivers of sorrow shall not overflow;

for I will be with you, your troubles to bless,

and sanctify to you your deepest distress.

“When through fiery trials your pathway shall lie,

my grace, all-sufficient, shall be your supply;

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 147

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 147

the flame shall not hurt you; I only design

your dross to consume and your gold to refine.

“E’en down to old age all my people shall prove

my sovereign, eternal, unchangeable love;

and when hoary hairs shall their temples adorn,

like lambs they shall still in my bosom be borne.

“The soul that on Jesus has leaned for repose,

I will not, I will not desert to his foes;

that soul, though all hell should endeavor to shake,

I’ll never, no never, no never forsake.”1

I’ll make several introductory comments before we explore each stanza.

First, one of the subtle charms of this hymn is that it is anonymous.

Only God and the author know who wrote it. In a world obsessed with

taking credit and receiving payment for achievements, this hymn is only

an unknown person’s honest offering to God. What significant sufferings

had that person faced? We don’t know. But every stanza breathes

firsthand experience with God’s hand in life’s hardships. Was the author

male or female? Young or old? Married or single? Black, brown, or

white? Rich, poor, or middling? Baptist, Presbyterian, or Anglican? We

have no idea. Whoever the person, whatever the affliction, we hear

timely words from the God of intervening grace. What is written will

speak into your significant suffering. The anonymity adds appropriateness

to the invitation to make this hymn your very own as a means of

grace.

Second, though we might not notice this, every hymn adopts a point

of view, a “voice” identifying a listener and a speaker. Most often we

sing to God, making requests or expressing praise: “Be Thou my vision,

O Lord of my heart.” Often we sing about God and what he has done,

bearing witness to others and reminding ourselves: “Amazing grace,

how sweet the sound, that saved a wretch like me.” Sometimes we sing

to each other, exhorting and encouraging: “O come, all ye faithful.”

Occasionally, just like Psalm 103, we sing to ourselves: “Be still, my soul,

148 The Grace of God in Suffering

1This version of the lyrics is updated to more modern language, from Trinity Hymnal (Suwanee, Ga.:

Great Commission Publications, 1990), #94. It can be sung to several well-known tunes. My favorite

is Adeste Fideles (also the tune of “O Come, All Ye Faithful”), which doubles the last line in each stanza.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 148

the Lord is on thy side.” Each of these voices expresses our faith in a different

way.

Most of “How Firm a Foundation” operates in an unusual voice.

Only in the first stanza do we express our faith by exhorting each other

to listen to what God has said. Notice what’s different about the last five

stanzas. Each begins with a quotation mark. Why is this? God is doing

the talking. Though we sing the words, we are placed in the role of listeners.

God is talking to you. You sing this hymn by listening. What does

he talk about? Interestingly, he speaks directly into significant suffering.

He tells you who he is and what he is like—pointedly with respect to

what you are going through. He tells you his purposes. He promises the

very things you most need. Most hymns express our faith to God, to

each other, and to ourselves. This hymn is more elemental. God’s voice

invites faith. He’s calling to you.

This is particularly appropriate when it comes to suffering. The

hymn writer demonstrates a profound feel for the struggles and needs

of sufferers. A sufferer’s primal need is to hear God talking and to experience

him purposefully at work. That changes everything. Left to ourselves,

we blindly react. Our troubles obsess us and distract us. We grasp

at straws. God seems invisible, silent, far away. Pain and loss cry out

loud and long. Faith seems inarticulate. Sorrow and confusion broadcast

on all the channels. It’s hard to remember anything else, hard to put

into words what is actually happening, hard to feel any force from who

Jesus Christ is. You might mumble right answers to yourself, but it’s like

reading the phone book. You pray, but your words sound rote, vaguely

unreal, like pious generalities. You’d never talk to a real person that way.

Meanwhile, the struggle churning within you is anything but rote and

unreal. Pain and threat are completely engrossing. You’re caught in a

swirl of apprehension, anguish, regret, confusion, bitterness, emptiness,

uncertainty.

This struggle is not surprising. Exodus 6:9, for example, describes

how “despondency and cruel bondage” (NASB) deafened the people.

Moses’ words made no impression because they were so crushed and

disheartened. But God worked patiently. He continued to say what he

does and to do what he says. The people’s sufferings, deafness, and

blindness did not vanish in the twinkling of an eye. But by Exodus 15:1-

18, the people were seeing and hearing, and they sang with hearty, well-

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 149

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 149

founded joy. How much more in our times. The Holy Spirit works powerfully

and intimately in this age of new creation to write God’s words

on our hearts. Sufferers awaken to hear their Father’s voice and to see

their Savior’s hand in the midst of significant suffering.

You need to hear what God says, and to experience that he does

what he says. You need to feel the weight and significance of what he is

about. He never lies. He never disappoints (though he wisely sets about

to disappoint our false hopes). Though you walk through the valley of

the shadow of death, you need fear no evil, for he is with you. Goodness

and mercy will follow you. This is what he is doing. God’s voice speaks

deeper than what hurts, brighter than what is dark, more enduring than

what is lost, truer than what happened.

You awaken. You take it to heart, and you take heart. You experience

that this is so. The world changes. You change. His voice changes

the meaning of every hardship. What he does—has done, is doing, will

do—alters the impact and outcome of everything happening to you.

Your faith grows up into honest, intelligent humanness, no longer

murky and inarticulate. You grow more like Jesus: the man of sorrows

acquainted with grief, the man after God’s own heart, who having loved

his own loved them to the end.

1. Listen

How firm a foundation, you saints of the Lord,

is laid for your faith in his excellent Word!

What more can he say than to you he has said,

to you who for refuge to Jesus have fled?

In 2 Timothy 2:19 (NASB), Paul wrote: “The firmfoundation of God

stands, having this seal, ‘The Lord knows those who are His.’” This

excellent Word never changes. This hymn is going to speak standing on

that firm foundation. Consider three things about the exhortation of this

opening stanza.

First, “What more can he say than to you he has said?” Let that rattle

around a minute. I don’t know how you read Scripture. But there is

a way to read Scripture that leaves you wishing God had said a whole

lot more. How did Satan become evil? Why does Chronicles add zeros

to the numbers in Samuel and Kings? How did Jonah avoid asphyxia-

150 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 150

tion? Who wrote the book of Hebrews? And those aren’t even the questions

that most often divide and perplex the church. Wouldn’t it have

been great if the Lord had slipped in one killer verse that pinned down

the eschatological timetable; that resolved once and for all every question

about baptism; that specifically told us how to organize church leadership

and government; that told us exactly what sort of music to use in

worship; that explained how God’s absolute sovereignty neatly dovetails

with full human responsibility? Only one more verse! And think what

he could have told us with an extra paragraph or chapter! If only the

Lord had shortened the genealogies, omitted mention of a few villages

in the land distribution, and condensed the spec sheet for the temple’s

dimensions, dishware, décor, and duties. Our Bible would be exactly the

same length—even shorter—but a hundred of our questions could have

been anticipated and definitively answered. Somehow, God in his providence

didn’t choose to do that.

It comes down to what you are looking for as you read and listen.

When you get to what most matters, to life-and-death issues, what more

can he say than to you he has said? Betrayal by someone you trusted?

Aggressive, incurable cancer? Your most persistent sin? A disfiguring disability?

The meaning and purpose of your life? Good and evil? Love and

hate? Truth and lie? Hope in the face of death? Mercy in the face of sin?

Justice in the face of unfairness? The character of God? The dynamics

of the human heart? What more can he say than to you he has said?

Listen well. There is nothing more that he needed to say.

Second, this opening stanza describes you, the listener, in profound

ways. You are among the “saints” of the Lord. In a nutshell, it means,

“God says, ‘You are mine. You belong to me.’” In popular usage, the

word “saint” has been debased to describe extraordinary, individual

spiritual achievements. But in the Bible—the way God views sainthood—

the word describes ordinary people who belong to a most

extraordinary Savior and Lord. Our Redeemer achieves all the extraordinary

things. At our best (and too often we are at our worst, or bumping

along in the middle!), “we have done only that which we ought to

have done” (Luke 17:10, NASB). God calls you “saint” to point out who

owns you, not to honor you for going above and beyond the call of duty.

It’s not the Medal of Honor; it’s your enlistment papers and dog tag.

When God has written his name on you, suffering qualitatively changes.

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 151

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 151

Pain, loss, and weakness are no longer the end of the world and the

death of your hopes. If you are not a saint, then sufferings are omens of

the end of your world. All that you live for will die when you die (Prov.

10:28). But when you are in Christ, sufferings become the context to

awaken your truest hopes and bring them to fulfillment.

There’s more. You have taken refuge in the Lord. You are a

“refugee.” You fled for your life and found every sort of aid and protection

in Jesus. In September 2005, hundreds of thousands of people

were displaced by Hurricane Katrina. Many escaped with nothing and

lost everything. They were vulnerable. They needed food, housing,

medical care, clothes, money, police protection, a new start. But a public

official caused an uproar when he referred to the evacuees as

“refugees.” The term was seen as demeaning. It called to mind the

degraded conditions in refugee camps for those fleeing genocide in

Sudan or Rwanda.

Refugee might connote degradation; but in Christ it becomes an

affirmation of glory and hope. We are refugees. The Bible turns many

typical associations upside down. Words for degradation and powerlessness—“

slave, crucifixion, child, weakness”—invert into symbols of

joy. A refugee absolutely depends on outside mercies. And you have

found all you need and more than you could ever imagine in the Lord,

the only true refuge. The opposite of a refugee? It is the current cultural

ideal: self-confidence, self-sufficiency, independence, right of ownership,

freedom to boldly assert your opinions, freedom to do what you want

as long as it doesn’t hurt someone else.

To be “dependent” on God often implies something warmand comfortable.

That is a partial truth. A child on his mother’s lap simply rests

in trust (Psalm 131). But often dependency doesn’t feel very good. You

need help. You’re helpless in yourself. When the psalmist cries to God,

“Help. If you won’t listen to me, I will die” (Ps. 28:1, AT), that’s not a

comfortable feeling. You feel threatened, battered, vulnerable. You are

powerless, with nowhere else to turn. Jesus’ first beatitude says that the

“poor in spirit” are the blessed. He turns another bad word upside

down. “Poor” means poverty-stricken, destitute, people with nothing,

street people. “Poor in spirit” means conscious awareness of dire and

pressing need for help that God most freely and generously gives.

Insoluble suffering (like insoluble sin) brings you to this foundation of

152 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 152

all blessing. God does not turn away from the afflictions of the afflicted.

Do not be afraid, little flock, he is giving you the kingdom (Luke 12:32).

Our discipleship materials often don’t teach us much about this. We

learn how to have a quiet time. We discover our spiritual gifts. We study

good doctrine. We learn how to study the Bible and memorize Scripture.

We don’t necessarily learn how to need help. “How Firm a Foundation”

teaches you to need help. God uses significant suffering to teach us to

need him.

2. I Am with You

“Fear not, I am with you, O be not dismayed;

for I am your God, and will still give you aid;

I’ll strengthen you, help you, and cause you to stand,

upheld by my righteous, omnipotent hand.”

How do you react to serious suffering? “Fear and dismay” cover the

ground pretty well! If you are honest, you feel rocked, overwhelmed,

preoccupied, confused, upset, endangered. You “struggle”—always. If

you do not feel the weight or knife-edge of what is happening, you are

a stone, not a human being. Image-bearers of God are not impervious.

But here’s the problem: distress and apprehension often become Godless.

The anguish of faith vanishes into godless dismay. As troubles settle

in, they claim your thought life, conversations, emotions, future,

faith. They occupy wakeful hours at night. If you fall asleep, they wake

up with you first thing in the morning. “Dismay” well covers a whole

range of temptations: from troubled to unglued, from disappointed to

hopeless, from worried to panicky, from frustrated to enraged.

There are also many dishonest reactions that aim to avoid experiencing

dismay in the face of life’s troubles. You meet many people who

have become cynical, hard-boiled, brutal, invulnerable. (Most are not

readers of books with “suffering” in the title!) They callous themselves

against any fresh experience of suffering (thereby also hardening themselves

from compassion on the sufferings of others). They fear and loathe

any “weakness” in themselves or others. In the pages of Scripture, perhaps

Pilate expresses this worldly-wise, cynical self-interest. Hard people

justify themselves as “realists.” In fact, they are dehumanized. Jesus

is far more realistic, and he chose to enter into weakness and affliction

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 153

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 153

in order to love needy people. You also meet people who recoil from life

(perhaps this is your tendency?). It’s the opposite of cynical, but it is also

dishonest. They become so blinded by pain, so fearful of further rejection

and loss, so vulnerable, that they withdraw into a shell of excruciating

self-protection. And still others (your tendency perhaps?) escape

into the “feel-goods,” the false refuges that numb or stimulate or distract.

Entertainment, recreation, and addiction seem like good hiding

places.

Honesty is able to feel the weight of things that arouse fear and dismay.

The problem is not that we feel troubled by trouble and pained by

pain. Something hurtful should hurt. The problem is that God slides

away into irrelevance when we obsess over suffering or compulsively

avoid it. God inhabits a vague afterthought—weightless and distant in

comparison to something immediately pressing. Or, if God-words fill

our minds and pour forth from our lips, it’s easy to make the “god” we

cry out to someone who will magically make everything better if we can

only catch his ear.

The real God is up to better things. He says and does weighty and

immediate things that engage what you are facing. He pursues purposes

that are better than you imagine. He refuses to become your lucky charm

who makes all the bad things disappear from your world.

Suffering tends to trigger a cascade of bad reactions. God gives a

cascade of better reasons that invite the finest responses of which a

human being is capable. These very reasons patterned Jesus’ consciousness,

motives, emotions, words, and actions as he faced his own significant

suffering. In this second stanza, God makes seven promises. Our

hymn writer didn’t just make it up. The stanza closely paraphrases Isaiah

41:10. God said exactly these words, and our hymn accurately quotes

the source:

I am with you.

I am your God.

I will still give you aid.

I will strengthen you.

I will help you.

I will cause you to stand.

I will uphold you by my all-good, all-powerful hand.

154 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 154

Jesus, the pioneer and perfecter of faith, heard this voice, and took it to

heart. He now says these same things to you.

What makes it hard for us to hear? There are times we have a hard

time slowing down to listen. There are times we simply don’t want to

listen. There are times we are busy listening to ten thousand other voices,

including our own. There are times we feel so weary and disheartened

that we don’t feel up for listening. But whatever the particulars, our

essential problem is deafness to God’s voice. We become absorbed in the

world of our own experiences, thoughts, feelings, and opinions. The

early church used a wonderful phrase to capture the essential inwardturning

nature of sinfulness: curvitas in se. We curve in on ourselves.

Sin’s curvitas in se pointedly turns away from God. When you or others

suffer, you experience or witness the strength of this incurving tendency.

It’s hard not to be self-preoccupied.

God willingly keeps talking. Listen to how near he sounds in this

hymn. The Lifegiver willingly gives ears to hear. The incurving can be

reversed. Psalms cry out rather than turning in. Jesus is a most excellent

teacher. In the extremity of his agony, there was no curvitas in se. He

heard God’s voice and remembered. He turned towards God in neediness,

generosity, and trust: “My God, my God, why have you forsaken

me? Forgive them, for they don’t know what they are doing. Father, into

your hands I commit my spirit.” He turned towards people in practical

love: “Today you will be with me in paradise. Behold your son. Behold

your mother.” He gave voice to honest experience of his ordeal: “I am

thirsty. It is finished.”2 This is the Jesus to whom we have fled for refuge.

This most careful and thoughtful of listeners walked ahead of us. He

deals gently with our ignorance and waywardness. He now willingly

walks with us, fully aware of our temptations to be forgetful, distracted,

and inattentive. He addresses the biggest problem first. That’s why this

hymn speaks in the first person. The words of new life first create ears

that listen.

God is talking. His sheep hear his voice, even in the valley of the

shadow of death. Are you listening?

The starting point of this stanza is well chosen. “I am with you” is

a central promise when speaking pastorally with sufferers. It’s no acci-

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 155

2 Matthew 27:46; Luke 23:34, 43, 46; John 19:26-28, 30.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 155

dent that Psalm 23 says, “I fear no evil, for you are with me” (v. 4

NASB). It’s no accident that this is the central promise of the entire Bible,

the one hope of sinners and sufferers. It is the only thing Moses really

wanted—without it the so-called Promised Land was only mediocre

real estate. It is the essential reason that David’s life flourished. It came

to a point in Emmanuel, in whom all God’s promises become Yes and

Amen (2 Cor. 1:20).

I will unpack one pastoral implication of this omni-relevant

promise: suffering often brings a doubled pain. In the first place there is

“the problem” itself—sickness, poverty, betrayal, bereavement. That is

hard enough (and this promise speaks comfort). But it is often compounded

by a second problem. Other people, even well-meaning, often

don’t respond very well to sufferers. Sufferers are often misunderstood,

or meddled with, or ignored. These reactions add relational and psychological

isolation to “the problem.” For example, Job suffered the

deaths of his children, financial disaster, and unrelenting physical pain.

But then he had to deal with the attitudes of his wife and friends. They

exacerbated his suffering. He became utterly isolated because they misunderstood

and mistreated him. When Job’s life was hardest, he was also

most alone. Similarly, Jesus faced betrayal, mockery, and torture at the

hands of his enemies. But his truest friends? First they argued about who

was most important. Then they lapsed into sleepy incomprehension.

Then they disintegrated into confusion, panic, flight, and denial. When

Jesus’ life was most painful, he also had to go it alone. God speaks into

this: “I am with you.”

This doubled hardship is a common experience. A young woman is

bereaved of her father whom she dearly loves. Her friends are initially

very supportive. But they get tired of her grief long before her grief is

over. They give up on her as a friend. Or, parents of a severely disabled

child face lifelong hardships of many sorts. They also face how they are

treated by others. Friends and family distance themselves, or feel awkward

and don’t know what to say, or offer laughably (weepably?) inappropriate

help, or don’t want to be bothered, or offer a thousand

suggestions and fixes that reveal utter incomprehension of the realities.

Disability is compounded by isolation. But “I am with you.”

Here’s another way this happens. People who love you often focus

exclusively on “the problem.” They ask about “the problem.” They

156 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 156

pray that God would solve “the problem.” They offer advice for solving

“the problem.” They care for you! These are well-meaning attempts

to be helpful. But the effect can become unkind. For example, many significant

sufferings have no remedy until the day when all tears are wiped

away. Your disease or disability is incurable. The injustice will not be

remedied in your lifetime. Your loved one is dead. The marriage is over.

The money is gone. There may be partial helps along the way. There may

be partial redemptions. There will be no fix. Often the biggest problem

for any sufferer is not “the problem.” It is the spiritual challenge the

problem presents: “How are you doing in the midst of what you are

going through? What are you learning? Where are you failing? Where

do you need encouragement? Will you learn to live well and wisely

within pain, limitation, weakness, and loss? Will suffering define you?

Will faith and love grow, or will you shrivel up?” These are life-anddeath

issues—more important than “the problem” in the final analysis.

They take asking, thinking, listening, responding. They take time. Other

people are often clumsy and uncomprehending about the most important

things, while pouring energy and love into solving what is often

insoluble. “I am with you.”

This double suffering commonly occurs when a health problem

eludes diagnosis and cure. Jesus met a woman who “had a hemorrhage

for twelve years, and had endured much at the hands of many physicians,

and had spent all that she had, and was not helped at all, but rather had

grown worse” (Mark 5:25-26, NASB). Her story has a decidedly contemporary

ring! Bleeding was a real medical problem. But attempts to help

multiplied her misery. The subsequent two thousand years have not eliminated

the phenomenon: faulty diagnoses, misguided treatments, negative

side effects, contradictory advice, huge waste of time and money, false

hopes repeatedly dashed, false fears pointlessly rehearsed, no plausible

explanation forthcoming, blaming the victim, and declining sympathy as

compassion fatigue sets in for would-be helpers! The woman was sick;

other people made it worse. “I am with you.”

J. I. Packer once noted that “a half-truth masquerading as the whole

truth becomes a complete untruth.”3 We can extend his logic. A half-

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 157

3 J. I. Packer, A Quest for Godliness: The Puritan Vision of the Christian Life (Wheaton, Ill.: Crossway

Books, 1994), 126.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 157

kindness masquerading as the whole of kindness becomes a complete

unkindness. The desire to explain and solve “the problem” is surely a

kindness. But it can miss the person who must in any case come to grips

with what is happening. The first line of this stanza displays a remarkable

pastoral intuition. God speaks first to the fear, dismay, and isolation

that attend hardships.

This is a workshop chapter. Take your most significant of sufferings.

Try out these sentences. I am not afraid of _________. I am not dismayed

by _________. Can you say this and mean it? What gets in the way?

What gives you reasons to say it, mean it, and live it out all your days?

3. “I’m with You for a Purpose”

“When through the deep waters I call you to go,

the rivers of sorrow shall not overflow;

for I will be with you, your troubles to bless,

and sanctify to you your deepest distress.”

Words from Isaiah 43:2 weave through this stanza. Your troubles

are envisioned as “deep waters” and “rivers.” Isaiah alludes to when

God’s people faced the Red Sea with enemies at their back, and to when

they faced the Jordan River at flood stage. No human being could carve

a path through such difficulties. God restates his core promise with an

eye to the future: “I will be with you.” That itself is significant, because

the effects of most significant sufferings extend into an indeterminate

future. We need much more than help in the present moment. What

exactly does it mean that God will be “with” you amid destructive

forces?

In promising this, God explicitly does not mean that he will give you

mere comfort, warm feelings because a friend is standing at your side

through tough times. God plays a much more active and powerful role.

This stanza fills in the meaning with four vast truths:

• God himself calls you into the deep waters in your life.

• God sets a limit on the sorrows.

• God is with you actively bringing good from your troubles.

• In the context of distressing events, God changes you to

become like him.

158 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 158

This is heady stuff. High and purposeful sovereignty. A big God—who

comes close to speak tenderly, work personally, make you different, finish

what he begins.

In other words, your significant sufferings don’t happen by accident.

No random chance. No purposeless misery. No bad luck. Not even (and

understand this the right way) a tragedy. Tragedy means ruin, destruction,

downfall, an unhappy ending with no redemption. Your life story

may contain a great deal of misery and heartache along the way. But in

the end, in Christ, your life story will prove to be a “comedy” in the

good old sense of the word, a story with a happy ending. You play a part

in the Divine Comedy, as Dante called it, with the happiest ending of

any story ever written. Death, mourning, tears, and pain will be no more

(Rev. 21:4). Life, joy, and love get last say. High sovereignty is going

somewhere. People miss that when they make “the sovereignty of God”

sound as if it implied fatalism, like Islamic kismet, like que sera sera, like

being realistic and resigned to life’s hardships. God’s sovereign purposes

don’t include the goal of getting you to just accept your troubles. He’s

not interested in offering you some perspective to just help get you

through a rough patch.

This stanza expresses the kind purposes of the most high God. But

it does not make light of your hardships. There is no chilly objectivity

in God’s words. He carefully refers to the pain of deep sufferings in every

line. He speaks poignantly, not matter-of-factly: “deep waters, rivers of

sorrow, troubles, deepest distress.” In fact, the original hymn (with “thee

and thou”) put the second line even more graphically: “The rivers of

woe shall not thee overflow.” Woe is the keenest edge of anguish, the

extremity of distress, sorrow raised to the highest degree of pain.

Those rivers of woe sweep many good things away. Your deepest

distress is deeply distressing. But the God who loves you is master of

your significant sorrow. He calls you to go through even this hard thing.

Though it feels impossible and devastates earthly hopes, he sets a boundary

(not where we would set it). He convinces you that this hard thing

will come out good beyond all you can ask, imagine, see, hear, or conceive

in your heart (Eph. 3:20; 1 Cor. 2:9). You will pass through the

valley of the shadow of death filled with evils, but you will say that goodness

and mercy followed you all the days of your life.

Again, take in hand the significant suffering that contributes to your

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 159

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 159

half of this chapter. Insert it into this stanza. “When I call you to go

through _________, you will not drown in the rivers of woe. I will be

with you to bring blessing out of _________. I will take _________, and

sanctify it to you. I will transform _________ into the crucible in which

you become like Jesus, whose self-giving love enters the real troubles of

the human condition.”

God is God. He exerts a high and purposeful sovereignty. But we

often misapply God’s sovereignty when it comes to actually helping sufferers—

both ourselves and others. Here is a common misapplication:

“God is in control, therefore what’s happening is his will. You need to

just trust the Lord and accept it. Ignore your feelings. Remember the

truth, gird your loins, and get with the program.” Somehow stoic conclusions

are fashioned from a most unstoic truth about a most unstoic

God!

Here’s the classic text whose pastoral application too often misfires

in this way: “Let those who suffer according to God’s will entrust their

souls to a faithful Creator while doing good” (1 Pet. 4:19). Even as you

read those words, does it sound like the Bible puts the damper on

heartache? Does God teach a sanctified version of calm detachment and

dutiful self-discipline? Is Peter saying, “It doesn’t matter that you’re suffering.

God’s in control, so just keep up your quiet time and fulfill your

responsibilities”? Does God make the deep waters only waist deep?

Does he canalize the rivers of woe, so they flow gently between banks

of riprap? Does he sanctify distress by making it unstressful? Does he

call you to ignore what’s going on around you in order to get on with

being a Christian? Look carefully at how to entrust your soul to a faithful

Creator. You’ll never read 1 Peter 4:19 in the same way.

Consider David’s Psalm 28. “To you, LORD, I call. My Rock, do not

be deaf to me. If you don’t answer me, I will die. Hear the voice of my

supplications, my cry for help to you” (vv. 1-2, AT). This is an example

of what it means to “entrust your soul” to the sovereign God. It’s not

sedate. David does not mentally rehearse the fact that God is in control

in order to quietly press on with unflinching composure. Instead, trust

pleads candidly and believingly with God: “This is big trouble. You must

help me. I need you. You are my only hope.” Prayer means “ask for

something you need and want.” Supplication means “really ask.” Frank

supplication is the furthest thing from keeping everything in perspective

160 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 160

so you can move on with life as normal. The sovereign God does not

intend that you maintain the status quo while suffering. Pain disrupts

normal. It’s supposed to disrupt normal. It’s supposed to make you feel

a need for help. Psalm 28 is not an orderly “quiet time.” It’s noisy and

needy. When you let life’s troubles get to you, it gets you to the only one

who can help. As Psalm 28 unfolds, David specifically names the trouble

he’s in, what he’s afraid of, what he wants (vv. 3-5). His trust in God’s

sovereignty moves to glad confidence (vv. 6-7). Finally, his faith works

out into love as he starts interceding on behalf of others (vv. 8-9).

Consider how Psalm 10 trusts a faithful God. Your life is being

threatened by predatory people who give you good reason for apprehension.

You begin to entrust your soul by crying out, “Why do you

stand far away from me, O Lord? Where are you? Why do you hide

yourself in times of trouble?”(v. 1, AT).4 Faith in God’s sovereign rule,

promises, and purposes talks out the implications. Instead of ignoring

the situation and the feelings of threat, instead of finding a quiet (but

unreal) solace, instead of getting on with business as usual, the psalmist

even takes time to think carefully about the thought processes of wicked

men (vv. 2-11, 13). His scope of concern reaches beyond his own plight:

the afflicted, the unfortunate, the innocent, the orphan, the oppressed.

He thinks through how God’s hand rests differently on evildoers and on

sufferers (vv. 12, 14-18). We might say that the things of earth definitely

do not grow strangely dim. Instead, they grow much clearer in the light

of his glory and grace! This psalm comes out in a place of resolution and

confidence. But trust never anesthetizes the threat. So entrusting to a

faithful Creator ends with a plea: “Do justice for the fatherless and the

oppressed, so that man who is of the earth will no longer cause terror”

(v. 18, AT). That’s not calm, cool, and collected. It’s faith working

through love.

Finally, Psalms 22:1 and 31:5 were out loud on Jesus’ lips, because

these psalms were in his heart as he entrusted his soul to God. Hebrews

5:7 (NASB) refers to this time as characterized by “loud crying and tears

to the One able to save him from death.” Jesus hardly ignored his feel-

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 161

4 That’s not a bitter rant: “Where was God when I needed him? It’s God’s fault that I’m suffering,

because he could have stopped it.” Both stoics and ranters take a mechanical view of God’s sovereign

control, detaching it from his living purposes. For stoics, God’s control over suffering rationalizes cool

detachment. For ranters, it becomes reason for hot accusation.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 161

ings or viewed them as the inconvenient by-product of cognitive processes!

These are psalms of intense affliction. You see what was on Jesus’

mind when he poured out his heart. He cried, “My God, my God, why

have you forsaken me?” because he believed that the sovereign God does

not treat lightly “the affliction of the afflicted”; God won’t shrink back

in dismay from our troubles; God doesn’t turn away and ignore naked

need (Ps. 22:24). He does not forsake us. He hears and acts. Other people

often do distance themselves from suffering. They minimize it, recoil

in distaste, look the other way, or blame the victim. But this God will

hear our cry.

In Jesus’ final act of trust he expressed himself in words from Psalm

31:5: “Into your hands I commit my spirit.” Taken out of context, these

words might sound calm, cool, and collected. But taken in context, it is

anything but calm. This is a plea of need from a man fully engaged with

both his troubles and his God. The emotions of Psalm 31 expressing

faith in the act of trust run the gamut from fear to courage, from sorrow

to joy, from hate to love, from neediness to gratitude. “Commit”

(Luke 23:46) and “entrust” (1 Pet. 4:19) are the same Greek word. Peter

intentionally calls forth our experience into the pattern of Jesus’ experience

on the cross.

God’s high sovereignty? Of course, it takes all the panic out of life.

Any reason for despair washes away. But, grasp it rightly, and you’ll never

be matter-of-fact and coolly detached. God’s purposes are to “sanctify”

you. And his kind of sanctification aims for vibrant engagement with the

real and immediate conditions of life, both the good and the bad. “All

that is within me, joyously bless his name” and “Hear my anguished cry

for help” are both what sanctification produces. Christ fiercely opposes

matter-of-fact detachment. It is the opposite of what he is like. God will

teach you to experience life the way the psalms express it.

4. “My Loving Purpose Is Your Transformation”

“When through fiery trials your pathway shall lie,

my grace, all-sufficient, shall be your supply;

the flame shall not hurt you; I only design

your dross to consume and your gold to refine.”

This stanza makes God’s purpose even more explicit. He designs

162 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 162

your significant suffering for three reasons: to reveal his abiding generosity,

to remove all that is ungenerous in you, to make you abidingly

generous. He is “with us” to work out this purpose. The metaphor of

“fiery trials” that cannot finally harm you comes from Isaiah 43:2. But

this stanza’s core promise arises from 1 Peter 1:6-9. Peter uses the

metaphor of a smelting furnace. You are a mixed—mixed-up!—creature,

and experiences of suffering purify you. His love works to take

away all that is wrong (“dross”). The outcome is a torrent of love and

joy towards God in Christ, and a sincere, fervent love for others

(“gold”). Peter says that this is the fruit of faith, because you have never

actually seen Jesus. But he becomes more and more real in the context

of fiery trials. We will look first at the dross, and then at the gold.

Most of the time we are right to separate sufferings from sins. What

you do is different from what happens to you. Your sins are bad things

about you as a moral agent. Your sufferings are bad things that happen

to you. Agent and victim are opposite in principle. So far so good. Most

of this book (like this chapter) has rightly focused on the things that happen

to us. Christians, as new creation in Christ, live in an essentially different

relationship to their sufferings.

But it is worth noting that Christians, as new creations in Christ,

also live in an essentially different relationship to their own sinfulness.

Your sin now afflicts you. The “dross” no longer defines or delights you.

Indwelling sin becomes a form of significant suffering. What you once

instinctively loved now torments you. The essential change in your relationship

with God radically changes your relationship to remaining sinfulness.

In Christ, in order to sin, you must lapse into temporary insanity,

into forgetfulness. It is your worst cancer, your most crippling disability,

your most treacherous enemy, your deepest distress. It is the single

most destructive force impacting your life. Like nothing else in all creation,

this threatens your life and well-being.

This is not to justify or excuse our sins. Your sin is your sin. When

you get your back up in an argument, when you vegetate in front of the

TV, when you spin a fantasy world of romance or eroticism, when you

grumble about the weather, when you obsess about your performance

in the eyes of significant others, when you worry, nag, or gossip, you do

these things. No evil twin, no hormone, no satanic agency, and no aspect

of your upbringing can take credit or blame for the works of your flesh.

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 163

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 163

You do it. You wanted to do it . . . but you don’t really want to, when

you come to your senses. And you do come to your senses. The conflicted

dual consciousness of the Christian always lands on its feet. You

commit sin, but you are more committed to the Lord, because he is absolutely

committed to you. Many psalms capture this tension that always

resolves the right way. They confess the dark vitality of indwelling sin

while confessing love for the triumphant mercies and goodness of the

Lord.5

In moments of sane self-knowledge, you view your dark tendencies

as an affliction: “I am what I do not want to be. I do what I do not what

to do. I think what I do not want to think. I want what I do not want

to want.” You feel the inner contradiction: “I want to love God joyously,

but meander in self-preoccupation. I want to love others freely, but lapse

into lovelessness. I want to forgive, but brood in bitterness. I want to give

to others, but find that I take from them or ignore them. I want to listen

and learn, but find I am opinionated and narrow-minded. My

biggest problem looks at me from the mirror.” But indwelling sin does

not define you. It opposes you. It is an aberration, not an identity. Selfwill

is a living contradiction within you. So you look far beyond the mirror:

“The love of Christ for me will get last say. He is merciful to me for

his name’s sake, for the sake of his own goodness, for the sake of his

steadfast love and compassion (Psalm 25). When he thinks about me,

he remembers what he is like, and that is my exceeding joy. My indestructible

hope is that he has turned his face towards me, and he will

never turn away.”

All the promises of our hymn apply to the significant suffering of

indwelling evil, as well as to the evils that come at you from outside. You

probably did not initially identify a pattern of indwelling sin as your

most significant suffering. But put the two together. How does God use

the very trouble you identified as a context that reveals what he is working

on? How do you know that he will deliver you from the sins that

afflict you?

Second, what does the “gold” look like? Earlier we portrayed how

164 The Grace of God in Suffering

5 Most people associate psalms of confession (e.g., 32, 38, 51) with this theme. But Psalm 119 most

vividly captures the dual consciousness that lands on its feet. See “Suffering and Psalm 119” in David

Powlison, Speaking Truth in Love (Winston-Salem, N.C.: Punch Press, 2005), 11-31. Psalm 25 and

Romans 6–8 are also filled with this holy ambivalence that lands on God’s side of the struggle.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 164

faith thinks and speaks according to the intelligent passion of the

psalms. And that faith leads somewhere very, very good. We will examine

two key aspects of the love that faith produces. The most remarkable

good things that the planet has ever seen or will ever see can only

come out in the context of suffering. We will look first at fearless

endurance and then at wise love.

Grace means courage. When God says, “Fear not,” his aim is not

that you would just calm down and experience a relative absence of fear.

He does not say, “Don’t be afraid. Everything will turn out okay. So you

can relax.” Instead he says, “Don’t be afraid. I am with you. So be strong

and courageous.” Do you hear the difference? The deep waters have not

gone away. The opposite of fear is fearlessness. Fearlessness is active and

enduring. It carries on constructively in the midst of stressful things that

don’t feel good at all. Courage means more than freedom from anxious

feelings. Endurance is a purposeful “abiding under” what is hard and

painful, considering others even when you don’t feel good.

There are countless ways to simply lessen anxiety feelings: vigorous

exercise, getting all the facts, Prozac, cognitive behavioral therapy, finding

the best possible doctor, yoga, a vacation in Bermuda, a glass of

wine, getting some distance from the problem, finding support from fellow

sufferers, throwing yourself into work. Some of these are fine in

their place. But none of them will make you fearless in the face of trouble.

None of them creates that fruit of the Spirit called “endurance,”

which is mentioned repeatedly when the New Testament talks about

God’s purposes in suffering. None of the strategies for personal peace

gives you the disposition and power to love another person considerately

in the small choices of daily life. None of them gives you high joy in

knowing that your entire life is a holy experiment as God’s hands shape

you into the image of his Son. None of them changes the way you suffer

by embedding it in deeper meaning. None gives you a reason to persevere

in fruitfulness through all your days, even if the scope of your

obedience is constricted to your interactions with nurses at your bedside.

Grace also teaches wise love. In fact, fearless endurance is for the

purpose of wise love. God is making you like Jesus in the hardships of

real life. Jesus combines two qualities that rarely go together: true compassion

and life-rearranging counsel. He intends to combine them in

you. Some helpers care intensely, but don’t know what to say. They feel

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 165

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 165

helpless compassion. They offer platitudes. They reinforce the self-pity

and entitlement of the victimized. Other helpers have advice to offer, but

don’t enter the plight of sufferers. They offer cold counsel. They become

impatient when a sufferer is slow to change. They dismiss the significance

of the affliction of the afflicted. Neither is able to really comfort;

neither is able to really guide.

But when you’ve passed through your own fiery trials, and found

God to be true to what he says, you have real help to offer. You have

firsthand experience of both his sustaining grace and his purposeful

design. He has kept you through pain; he reshaped you more into his

image. You’ve found that what this entire hymn says is true. What you

are experiencing from God, you can give away in increasing measure to

others. You are learning both the tenderness and the clarity necessary to

help sanctify another person’s deepest distress.

Second Corinthians 1:4 says it best: “[God] comforts us in all our

affliction so that we will be able to comfort those who are in any affliction

with the comfort with which we ourselves are comforted by God.”

That word “comfort” (or “encourage” in other translations) does not

simply mean solace or inspiration. It means God’s transformative compassion,

the perfect union of kindness and candor. He speaks the truth

in love so that we grow up to do the same. Notice how wise love is a

“generalizable skill.” What you learn from God in your particular affliction

becomes helpful to others in any affliction. This is why a hymn written

250 years ago can help us in any affliction, though we don’t know

exactly what particulars the author experienced.

God’s personal tenderness, unchangeable truth, and high purposes

are united so that he simultaneously accomplishes seemingly contradictory

things. He profoundly comforts us as sufferers, strengthening us for

endurance. He mercifully challenges us as sinners, humbling us with our

ongoing need for the blood of the Lamb. He powerfully changes us as

his sons and daughters, making us fearless, making us wise to help other

sufferers, other sinners, other sons and daughters. There is inevitably an

aloneness in suffering because no one can fully enter another’s experience.

Each person “knows the affliction of his own heart” (1 Kings 8:38;

cf. Prov. 14:10). God ensures that human aid will never substitute for

the Lord who alone comes fully near. But we can bear each other’s bur-

166 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 166

dens with love, and we can counsel each other with truth. The give and

take of wise love is one of life’s most significant joys.

5. “I Will Prove My Love to the End of Your Life”

“E’en down to old age all my people shall prove

my sovereign, eternal, unchangeable love;

and when hoary hairs shall their temples adorn,

like lambs they shall still in my bosom be borne.”

All that we’ve looked at continues even down to old age. This is

remarkable. It shows great sensitivity to the human condition to write

a hymn about growing old. Readers already “adorned” with gray or

white hair—big fans of Psalm 71!—will immediately appreciate why a

hymn for sufferers must tackle aging. A friend of mine in his seventies

puts it this way: “Growing old is not for the fainthearted.” Every single

reader, should you live so long, will experience a landslide of losses and

disabilities. Live long enough, and you may outlive everyone you love:

parents, friends, spouse, even children, perhaps grandchildren. You may

outlive your money. You outlive your usefulness in the workplace and

other productive arenas. You outlive your relevance. You are no longer

part of what’s happening. You outlive your health as every bodily system

breaks down. You might outlive your ability to walk, your toilet

training, your ability to feed yourself. You may outlive your memory,

and, in the extreme, might lose your ability to put thoughts together, to

relate to others the way you wish you could, and even to remember who

you are. Should you live long enough, you will lose every earthly good.

And then you will certainly lose your life. The last enemy still kills. Our

hymn only mentions the outward indicators: the years, the white hairs.

But those allusions tip you off to a story of weakness, hardship, and

finally the loss of life itself. It is in this context that God gently and persistently

promises to prove his “sovereign, eternal, unchangeable love . . .

like lambs they shall still in my bosom be borne.” He tenderly carries

the helpless.

A dear friend had experienced many losses in her life. She recently

faced one more: a disfiguring cancer surgery. She put her grief plaintively,

“I didn’t expect the scarring after the bandages came off. It’s upsetting

to look in the mirror. It’s one more loss. And I feel so much uncertainty

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 167

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 167

about whether the cancer will return. Then there’s the loss of people, the

isolation, the loss of human society, the parts of life in which I can no

longer participate.” She is a woman of articulate faith. She is honest

about the pain of loss. But her God speaks the final, decisive word about

her: “I will carry you and never let you go.” That is perhaps the deepest

comfort communicated by this hymn’s way of communicating God’s

voice. He gets first say, and he gets last say. So everything in the middle—

about which he expects us to have lots to say!—is anchored in

sovereign, eternal, unchangeable love.

How does faith learn what to trust? God teaches faith the words to

trust and what to say. Think back to the very first promise in the second

stanza, “Fear not, I am with you.” This fifth stanza (like the fourth, like

the third, and like the sixth to come!) says essentially the same thing.

Each gives us different details, unpacks further implications, uses

metaphors that evoke a different nuance of God’s inexhaustible riches

of wisdom. Psalm 23:4 has probably provided more comfort to more

suffering and dying people than any other passage of Scripture: “Though

I walk through the valley of the shadow of death, I will fear no evil, for

you are with me.” Notice that through this entire hymn, God has been

telling that same truth from the opposite direction. “Fear not, I am with

you” allows Psalm 23 to say, “I fear not, for you are with me.” Faith listens

well, and lives it back to God.

I bring this up here because of the other details in Psalm

23:4—“shadow of death” and “no evil” (i.e., any one of the many evils).

Most likely, the particular “shadow” of oncoming death that threatened

David was an enemy (most likely Saul) who was out to kill him. Like a

sheep stalked by wolves, David lives, but under a “shadow” of looming

death. David generalizes this experience to “any evil” that we might fear.

The metaphor powerfully applies to hardships of aging. Death is coming

nearer. Aging casts numerous specific shadows of approaching

death: sickness, losses, weakness, helplessness, futility. In fact, if you

think about it, whether you are young or old, every form of significant

suffering, every evil, leaves something of the bitter taste of death in your

mouth. So “shadow of death” is not simply an evocative metaphor,

and “no evil” does not intend a generality. Those shadows and evils are

person-specific: your significant sufferings. You don’t theoretically need

God’s grace to reach into your sufferings. In suffering, you immediately

168 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 168

feel your need. A shadow reaches towards you. It covers you. Its inner

logic whispers or shouts of death.

Can you say, “I fear no evil”? Can you honestly say, “I do not

fear _________”? It all depends on actually hearing the God who says

the same truth from the opposite direction, so that you become able to

say it back. If the God of life is in fact with you, carrying you as a newborn

lamb, you will become fearless in any suffering. (I’m not mentioning

the ups and downs, the painful struggle of a lifetime to come

towards such a place. I’m describing the destination toward which to

struggle.) If God pledges his absolute fidelity to you, if indestructible love

will see you through to a good end, then you are able to walk a very hard

road. You will have to walk a very hard road. Death sends out many

messengers, even to the very young. If you listen, you will become fearless.

If you listen, you will endure. If you listen, you will fight the good

fight in the most terrible of wars. If you listen, you will know that you

need to be rescued. You will know that you need to be carried into the

battle, and carried through the battle, and finally carried from the battlefield.

If you listen, you will live.

6. “I Will Never Fail You”

“The soul that on Jesus has leaned for repose,

I will not, I will not desert to his foes;

that soul, though all hell should endeavor to shake,

I’ll never, no never, no never forsake.”

A predator is after you. The velociraptors are out. The roaring lion

prowls. Psalm 10, as we saw earlier, directly faced exactly this form of

significant suffering. Ultimately, you face the same. At the beginning of

this chapter, you selected some significant suffering in your life. We have

held that in view as we worked through this hymn stanza by stanza.

Perhaps you noticed that the fourth stanza pushed the envelope in a surprising

direction: by grace, your sinfulness has also become a significant

suffering. The gracious Lord actually uses the outward sufferings as a

catalyst to free you from the enemy within. The fifth stanza further

pushed the envelope: aging will bring you into the shadow of death, and

finally you will be swallowed into the darkness of the last enemy. The

sixth stanza pushes one more time: you have foes from hell. The fact that

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 169

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 169

you will die is not an impersonal fact. It registers the personal animosity

of a killer. There is a lord of darkness, who is father to both sin and

death. He personifies every aspect of the evils that come upon us and the

evils that arise from within us.

When you think about hellish foes coming after you, our hymn

writer (like the Bible) is talking about reality—not the “horror” genre

in videos and books. He means ordinary, everyday life lived under the

shadow of death. White hairs and birthday candles testify that a predator

is coming soon. The Evil One is both the accuser and murderer of

sinners. He holds the power of death (Heb. 2:14). He willingly conceals

his workaday identity behind veneers of horror and superstition. It

makes people unsuspecting. They don’t notice that he’s in the mortality

business however it happens.

When you think about the power of moral evil, our hymn writer

(again like the Bible) is talking about all-pervasive reality—not lurid stories

of Satan worship. He means garden-variety sin, unbelief, and selfwill,

spun out into ten thousand forms. The fair and honest wage paid

for ordinary sin is death (Rom. 6:23). The Evil One is both the liar and

tempter who works skillfully in and with the facts of life. It matters little

to him whether or not people even believe he exists. He willingly conceals

his real malignancy behind wild tales. It makes people

unsuspecting. They don’t notice that he’s in the unbelief business whatever

form it takes.

You suffer in a world in which immediate sufferings point to deeper,

darker, deadlier things: the enemy within, the final enemy, and The

Enemy. These significantly afflict every one of us. They characterize the

human condition. “The whole world lies in the evil one” (1 John 5:19,

literal translation). It is a slave world. A dark world. A death world.

But you suffer in a world in which all dark, deadly things exist

within an even deeper design and calling. The drama of evil occasions

the revelation of good: the holy justice and the sacrificial love of God.

He will bring all enemies to final justice. And he has shown wholly

unmerited mercy. When we were helpless, when we were ungodly, when

we were sinners, when we were enemies, Christ died for us. You are now

free. You are light in the Lord. You live. “We are of God. . . . We are in

him who is true, in his Son, Jesus Christ. This is the true God and eternal

life” (1 John 5:19f).

170 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 170

If you “lean for repose” on Jesus, you will live. “Repose” here does

not mean a restful state of peace and tranquility. It means actively placing

the weight of your life on Jesus. Put your entire faith, confidence, and

trust in him. Our Savior Christ Jesus abolished death, and brought life

and immortality to light. . . . I know whom I have believed, and I am

convinced that he is able to guard what I have entrusted to him until that

day (2 Tim. 1:10, 12). That is the language of repose.

This final stanza aims to make you free and fearless, no matter what

you now face or will face. I will never forsake you. God is willing to say

it until you get it! The final line of the hymn sends us out with another

of the Bible’s core promises. In fact, it completes a quartet, two promises

and two commands that God frequently links: “I am with you. Don’t

be afraid. Be strong and courageous. I will never forsake you.”6 We’ve

discussed the other promise and the two commands in previous sections.

Here one final promise gets last say. There is a particular appropriateness

to closing with I will never forsake you. Sufferers feel apprehension

about the future, for good reason. Some evils won’t go away.

Shadows multiply and darken. The night is coming. This word of comfort

looks to the future. It speaks right into our temptation to fear and

dismay.

Notice how God’s words press into you. The hymn has unfolded in

a double crescendo. Our awareness of suffering, pain, weakness, and

danger has steadily intensified. Our awareness of God’s powerful love

at work has steadily intensified. Sin, misery, and death abound. Grace,

joy, and life abound all the more. Mercy will have final say. But we easily

quail. We feel the force of things that undo us and would unglue us.

They shake us up. They immediately hurt. Is God’s saving voice only

words? Is it really so? The hymn writer knows our vulnerability to dismay.

“I’ll never, no never, no never forsake. I’ll never, no never, no never

forsake.”7 If you have ever sung this hymn with your brothers and sisters,

these last lines come out fiercely triumphant.

In the pages of the Bible, God explicitly promises, “I will not forsake

you” (e.g., Josh. 1:5). Once you know to look for it, you see that he says

the same truth in a hundred other ways, too. “God is faithful” and “His

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 171

6 See Deuteronomy 31:6, 8; Joshua 1:5; 1 Chronicles 28:20.

7 This powerful last line doubles when sung to Adeste Fideles.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 171

steadfast love endures forever” and “The Lord is my refuge” are variations

on a theme. What God says for himself, his spokesmen often proclaim

about him, “He will not forsake you” (e.g., Deut. 31:6, 8). So with

good reason his children cry out to him in their troubles and distresses,

Don’t forsake me! Again, hearing, we believe and speak. Scripture gives

many particular examples of this dynamic. Are you elderly, suffering

the weakness, pain, disability, and losses of aging? Don’t abandon me!

(Ps. 71:9, 18). Do you feel lonely and vulnerable as you face powerful

interpersonal hostility, bereft of anyone who can protect you? Don’t

desert me! (Ps. 27:9-10). Do you feel dismayed because of your sins,

that God has every reason to give up on you? Don’t give up on me!

(Ps. 119:8). Are you doubly dismayed, both because of your sins and

because of the hostilities of others? Don’t let me go! (Ps. 38:17-21).

Our hymn takes God’s simple “I will not” and says it ten times in a

row: “I will never, no, never, no, never, never, no, never, no, never forsake

you.” Not a mere doubling, but a promise to the power of ten. This

is pastoral wisdom, helping us to hear the fierceness and triumph of

God’s lovingkindness. You will never be abandoned. You will never be

alone. He will never give up on you.

Never forget this. Never forget. Never, never, never forget that he

will not forsake you.

Coda

So often the initial reaction to painful suffering is Why me? Why this?

Why now? Why? You’ve now heard God speaking with you. The real

God says all these wonderful things, and does everything he says. He

comes for you, in the flesh, in Christ, into suffering, on your behalf. He

does not offer advice and perspective from afar; he steps into your significant

suffering. He will see you through, and work with you the whole

way. He will carry you even in extremis. This reality changes the questions

that rise up from your heart. That inward-turning “why me?” quiets

down, lifts its eyes, and begins to look around.

You turn outward and new, wonderful questions form. Why you?

Why you? Why would you enter this world of evils? Why would you go

through loss, weakness, hardship, sorrow, and death? Why would you

do this for me, of all people? But you did. You did this for the joy set

172 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 172

before you. You did this for love. You did this showing the glory of God

in the face of Christ. As that deeper question sinks home, you become

joyously sane. The universe is no longer supremely about you. Yet you

are not irrelevant. God’s story makes you just the right size. Everything

counts, but the scale changes to something that makes much more sense.

You face hard things. But you have already received something better

which can never be taken away. And that better something will continue

to work out the whole journey long.

The question generates a heartfelt response: Bless the Lord, O my

soul, and do not forget any of his benefits, who pardons all your iniquities

and heals all your diseases, who redeems your life from the pit,

who crowns you with lovingkindness and compassion, who satisfies

your years with good things so that your youth is renewed like the eagle.

Thank you, my Father. You are able to give true voice to a thank you

amid all that is truly wrong, both the sins and the sufferings that now

have come under lovingkindness.

Finally, you are prepared to pose—and to mean—almost unimaginable

questions: Why not me? Why not this? Why not now? If in some

way, my faith might serve as a three-watt night-light in a very dark

world, why not me? If my suffering shows forth the Savior of the world,

why not me? If I have the privilege of filling up the sufferings of Christ?

If he sanctifies to me my deepest distress? If I fear no evil? If he bears me

in his arms? If my weakness demonstrates the power of God to save us

from all that is wrong? If my honest struggle shows other strugglers how

to land on their feet? If my life becomes a source of hope for others? Why

not me?

Of course, you don’t want to suffer, but you’ve become willing: “If

it is possible, let this cup pass from me; yet not as I will, but as you will.”

Like him, your loud cries and tears will in fact be heard by the one who

saves from death. Like him, you will learn obedience through what you

suffer. Like him, you will sympathize with the weaknesses of others. Like

him, you will deal gently with the ignorant and wayward. Like him, you

will display faith to a faithless world, hope to a hopeless world, love to

a loveless world, life to a dying world. If all that God promises only

comes true, then why not me?

God’s Grace and Your Sufferings 173

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 173

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 174

Good theology is essential if we are going to suffer well. It will help

us persevere during our trials, and it will give us hope. We believe

that “Weeping may tarry for the night, but joy comes with the morning”

(Ps. 30:5). It is faith in our good and sovereign God that enables us

to wait until the morning. But we must never forget that often the night

is long and the weeping uncontrollable.

No amount of good theology is able to take the pain out of suffering.

Too often we allow ourselves to believe that a robust view of God’s

sovereignty in all things means that when suffering comes it won’t hurt.

God’s sovereignty doesn’t take away the pain and evil that confront us

in our lives; it works them for our good.

The pain of suffering is both dark and deep. This is crucial to see,

for when we minimize the pain we fail to love others and we fail to

honor God. When we minimize the pain of suffering we can no longer

understand the apostle Paul, who said, “For this slight momentary affliction

is preparing for us an eternal weight of glory beyond all comparison”

(2 Cor. 4:17). There is nothing astounding about such a statement

if Paul is speaking about hangnails, stubbed toes, and his favorite shirt

getting stained.

But we know better. Paul’s statement is so amazing because he did suffer,

far more than most of us ever will. He was imprisoned multiple times,

suffered “countless beatings, and [was] often near death” (2 Cor. 11:23).

Waiting for the Morning during

the Long Night of Weeping

chapter 8

Dustin Shramek

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 175

Five times I received at the hands of the Jews the forty lashes less one.

Three times I was beaten with rods. Once I was stoned. Three times I

was shipwrecked; a night and a day I was adrift at sea; on frequent journeys,

in danger from rivers, danger from robbers, danger from my own

people, danger from Gentiles, danger in the city, danger in the wilderness,

danger at sea, danger from false brothers; in toil and hardship,

through many a sleepless night, in hunger and thirst, often without food,

in cold and exposure. And, apart from other things, there is the daily

pressure on me of my anxiety for all the churches. (2 Cor. 11:24-28)

He endured awful physical pain through beatings, lashings, and a

stoning. He went hungry and at times did not have adequate shelter

against the cold. He experienced the grief of seeing his friends near death

(Phil. 2:27-30). He was even betrayed by friends (2 Tim. 4:10, 16). Then

there was the “daily pressure” for the churches. It is only when we

understand the depth of Paul’s suffering and the pain he endured, both

physical and emotional, that we will stand amazed that he could call

such things slight and momentary. By embracing the depth of his pain

we are enabled to marvel at the eternal weight of glory. What glory it

must be if pain this deep and protracted is slight and momentary!

So it is good for us to delve into the depths of our pain in suffering,

for in so doing we will be teaching ourselves the far greater value of the

eternal weight of glory.

The Reality of Pain

We also need to delve into the depths of our pain in suffering so that we

can be honest. There are times in our lives that we can barely make it

out of bed in the morning and we have no energy to do anything. Our

pain and grief is so great that we are unable to concentrate. We have no

energy for prayer, let alone Bible reading. God feels distant and unloving.

Questions about his goodness and purposes run through our minds

without stopping.

This was certainly what my wife and I experienced after our son

Owen died in 2003. We were living in the Middle East, and as Kellie

went into labor we were medically evacuated to Istanbul, Turkey, where

premature babies have a better chance of survival. He was born

October 3, but he only lived for twenty minutes. I saw him kicking and

176 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 176

moving and heard him give one little cry, but that was it. Our firstborn

was dead.

The pain was unlike anything we had ever experienced. We felt

alone. A few nights after Owen died, my wife stayed up for hours

scouring the Scriptures for hope and comfort. She finally fell asleep

more discouraged than ever because she found none. Of course it was

there, but when we are in the depths of pain we often can’t see it, let

alone feel it.

We struggled with anger toward God, wondering why he didn’t

comfort us. We had prayed; indeed, people literally all over the world

had prayed for the life of our son, but God chose a different path for us.

So why wouldn’t he comfort us on this path?

Many people said things to us like, “Look to Jesus! Trust in his

promises. He does care for you. You need to get in the Word and pray

and fight for your joy. You need to talk with others about this and have

them pray for you.” We knew that this is true and right; yet, when we

were overwhelmed with grief, it felt hollow and unhelpful. We needed

to know that they too had been changed by our pain; that, in some sense,

it was also their pain.

We don’t love others in the midst of this kind of pain by pretending

that it isn’t all that bad or by trying to quickly fix it with some pat theological

answers. We love them by first weeping with them. It is when

we enter into their pain and are ourselves changed by it that we can

speak the truth in love. When their pain becomes our pain (as Paul said,

“If one member suffers, all suffer together” [1 Cor. 12:26]), we are able

to give the encouragement of the Scriptures.

My hope for this chapter is twofold. First, for those who are not in

the midst of suffering, I hope to help you see the depth of the pain of

those who are suffering. By entering into their pain you will be more

equipped to weep with those who weep. For those who are in the midst

of terrible suffering, I hope you will see that God has not abandoned you

in the pit. He knows it is dark and seemingly bottomless, but he has left

you a lifeline—himself. My prayer is that by looking at the depth of pain

in Scripture, God might give you even a tiny sliver of hope.

Waiting for the Morning 177

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 177

The Problem with Pain

The problem that we deal with here in the West is that we don’t like to

confront grief or suffering. Through medicine and wealth we have

avoided a lot of the suffering that the rest of the world still experiences

(though our fa³ade of invincibility was at least temporarily washed away

with 9/11 and Hurricane Katrina). Suffering is a universal experience so

we can’t avoid it forever. However, when it does come, we fast-paced

Westerners like to “deal with it” as quickly as possible.

In some cultures, after the death of a loved one there are many days

of mourning, and this mourning includes loud wailing and lamentations.

In fact, after Jacob died in the land of Egypt we are told that the

Egyptians wept for him seventy days” (Gen. 50:3. I emphasize

“Egyptians” because Jacob and his family were shepherds, and we are

told in Genesis 46:34 that shepherds are an abomination to the

Egyptians). When his family came to his burial place “they lamented

there with a very great and grievous lamentation” (Gen. 50:10). We, on

the other hand, have about a week before we are expected to return to

work and put up the front that we are okay. Even worse, in America

most of us work hard at holding back the loud cries during funerals.

Indeed, we even try to hold back the tears.

When my mother died of cancer, I was sixteen years old. I had been

a believer for two years and everyone was telling me how strong I was

and how well I was handling her death. No one saw me cry, and their

comments made me feel as though I shouldn’t cry. I had to be the strong

one for my family, and strong people don’t grieve (at least that is what

they unintentionally [?] led me to believe). It wasn’t until three months

after my mother’s death that I cried for the first time. The dam broke

and I sobbed like a baby. God used those tears to help begin my healing

as I was finally able to release some of the pain that had been building

up inside of me.

The problem, though, was that this experience made me a griefavoider.

There are many of us in the world (especially among men). I

learned to do whatever was necessary to avoid dealing with the grief in

my heart so that I could remain strong and not cry.

I believe this avoidance of grief in our culture results from not knowing

how to deal with pain. We get uncomfortable when we hear people

178 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 178

question God. We like to give easy answers to try to minimize the pain.

When someone says that they feel God has forsaken them, we think we

must quickly preach the truth that he will never leave us nor forsake us

(Heb. 13:5), or they will fall away and lose their faith.

Part of the problem is that we do not see such pain and deep grief

as normative in the Christian life. Yes, we all know that suffering is normative,

but we don’t take the time to really talk about the pain involved

in suffering. After all, it isn’t suffering if it doesn’t hurt.

When we read about great saints of the past, we hear about their

suffering, which is immediately followed by their triumph through

Christ. Rarely do we truly enter with them into their dark night of the

soul, when all around them nothing makes sense.

Consider the nineteenth-century theologian, Robert Dabney. In a

matter of about a month he lost two of his sons, Jimmy and Bobby. This

is what he says: “When my Jimmy died, the grief was painfully sharp,

but the actings of faith, the embracing of consolation, and all the cheering

truths which ministered comfort to me were just as vivid.” This is

what we like to hear.We like to hear that the truths of the gospel encouraged

him and that his faith was strong.

But he goes on in the same letter, “But when the stroke was

repeated, and thereby doubled, I seem to be paralyzed and stunned. I

know that my loss is doubled, and I know also that the same cheering

truths apply to the second as to the first, but I remain numb, downcast,

almost without hope and interest.”1 When we hear this we get uncomfortable.

The great truths of the gospel fell flat after his second son died

and he remained “numb, downcast, almost without hope and interest.”

It is true that God carried him through and that Dabney proved to be

faithful. He did triumph. He experienced the truth of Psalm 34:19,

“Many are the afflictions of the righteous, but the LORD delivers him out

of them all.” But let us not so quickly go from the affliction to the deliverance

and thus minimize the pain in between. God’s promise of deliverance

does not mean that he will immediately deliver us. For many,

deliverance only comes with death.

Waiting for the Morning 179

1 Thomas Cary Johnson, The Life and Letters of Robert Lewis Dabney (Edinburgh: Banner of Truth,

1977), 172.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 179

The Depth of Pain

What we need is to validate and give voice to the depth of pain. I don’t

want to merely sound the triumphant horn of the gospel (though I do

want to do that); I also want us to recognize that there is a reason it is

called suffering, affliction, and tribulation. We may be shocked when

suffering people speak openly of their pain, and concerned when it

sounds like they are questioning God’s goodness, wisdom, or power. But

if that makes us uncomfortable, then the Bible will make us uncomfortable.

As we will see, the pain of some of the psalmists was raw and

at times quite disturbing.

There are many psalms where we read about pain, but the most

remarkable one is Psalm 88, which some could argue is the most discouraging

chapter in the Bible:

O LORD, God of my salvation;

I cry out day and night before you.

Let my prayer come before you;

incline your ear to my cry!

For my soul is full of troubles,

and my life draws near to Sheol.

I am counted among those who go down to the pit;

I am a man who has no strength,

like one set loose among the dead,

like the slain that lie in the grave,

like those whom you remember no more,

for they are cut off from your hand.

You have put me in the depths of the pit,

in the regions dark and deep.

Your wrath lies heavy upon me,

and you overwhelm me with all your waves.

Selah

You have caused my companions to shun me;

you have made me a horror to them.

I am shut in so that I cannot escape;

my eye grows dim through sorrow.

Every day I call upon you, O LORD;

I spread out my hands to you.

180 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 180

Do you work wonders for the dead?

Do the departed rise up to praise you?

Selah

Is your steadfast love declared in the grave,

or your faithfulness in Abaddon?

Are your wonders known in the darkness,

or your righteousness in the land of forgetfulness?

But I, O LORD, cry to you;

in the morning my prayer comes before you.

O LORD, why do you cast my soul away?

Why do you hide your face from me?

Afflicted and close to death from my youth up,

I suffer your terrors; I am helpless.

Your wrath has swept over me;

your dreadful assaults destroy me.

They surround me like a flood all day long;

they close in on me together.

You have caused my beloved and my friend to shun me;

my companions have become darkness.

The first verse is the only verse in the entire psalm that has any sense

of hope. He begins, “O LORD, God of my salvation.” He had not

rejected God, and he still knew (at least intellectually) that God is the

God of his salvation. Yet as we read further it sounds as though this profession

of faith felt empty for him.

“I cry out day and night before you. Let my prayer come before you;

incline your ear to my cry! For my soul is full of troubles and my life

draws near to Sheol” (vv. 1-3). His pain was so great that he cried out

day and night, begging God to incline his ear and hear. He desperately

wanted for God to hear his cry and act on his behalf. But he didn’t feel

heard. He didn’t feel like anyone was listening. His soul was filled with

troubles and trials; he was near death, either literally or because of the

pain he was enduring. It is no small thing to be near death and feel that

the God you have served has put his hands over his ears so that he does

not hear.

In verse four he admits that he is a “man who has no strength.”

Grief and pain do this to us. They suck away our energy and leave us as

Waiting for the Morning 181

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 181

though dead, unable to even get dressed in the morning. In the deepest

and darkest moments of our suffering we are people without strength.

He takes it a step further and says that he is like a dead man, “like those

whom you remember no more, for they are cut off from your hand”

(v. 5). The pain is so great and overwhelming it caused him to believe

God had already forgotten him and counted him as dead. Even worse

than not being remembered was the reason he felt he was no longer

remembered. He believed he had been cut off from God’s hand, that is,

that he had been cut off from the covenant blessings of God. So it isn’t

just that God didn’t hear—God was treating him like he was a dead

Gentile, cut off from the covenant people of God.

“You have put me in the depths of the pit, in the regions dark and

deep” (v. 6). There are times when we feel so alone and cut off from

everyone, even God, that we seem to be in the depths of the pit. No one

else can possibly understand our pain, and there is no glimmer of hope.

We can’t see even a shred of light—surely the pit must be hundreds of

miles deep. The darkness is so deep it feels heavy all around as though

the darkness itself could be measured by a scale.

But the problem wasn’t just that he felt alone and lost in the pit. It

was worse than that. He felt that God’s wrath was heavy upon him. “Your

wrath lies heavy upon me, and you overwhelm me with all your waves”

(v. 7). He was overwhelmed, for the waves were crashing over him and he

knew that any moment he could go under them for the last time.

Part of the reason he felt so alone was because his companions had

shunned him—he was a horror to them (v. 8). Whatever the cause of his

pain, it also made his friends leave him. Perhaps this was because they

were horrified at what they saw when they looked at him, or perhaps it

was simply because they didn’t know what to say. The reason they

shunned him is irrelevant because for him the result was the same—he

was alone.

Yet even in the midst of such great pain, he was not negligent in

prayer. “Every day I call upon you, O LORD; I spread out my hands to

you” (v. 9). Every day he spread out his hands and called upon God

because he expected God to answer. But he didn’t receive an answer. His

hands remained empty day after day. This was when the pain was at its

deepest. Many of us can endure the worst kinds of suffering if God himself

is filling our hands (and hearts) with comfort. But when we cry out

182 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 182

for comfort and receive nothing, we are undone. Surely the Sovereign

One who has ultimately brought about this suffering could at least comfort

me in the midst of it, couldn’t he? When this doesn’t happen the suffering

is magnified beyond our imaginings.

The psalmist goes on to describe his despair and rejection in verses

13-16: “But I, O LORD, cry to you; in the morning my prayer comes

before you. O Lord, why do you cast my soul away? Why do you hide

your face from me? Afflicted and close to death from my youth up, I suffer

your terrors; I am helpless. Your wrath has swept over me; your

dreadful assaults destroy me.”

O God, I cry out to you, why don’t you answer? Why have you

rejected me and cast me away from you? I seek you, and yet you hide

your face from me. Why O Lord? Why? Don’t you see my affliction? I

cry out for mercy from you, but instead of mercy I suffer your terrors

and am helpless. Your wrath sweeps over me and you are assaulting me,

destroying me. Where are you? Who are you?

He then ends the psalm with this statement: “You have caused my

beloved and my friend to shun me; my companions have become darkness”

(v. 18). Even the one closest to him had turned away and now

there was nothing but darkness.

That’s it. There is nothing more, the psalm has ended. He did not

move from pain and grief to joyful triumph. He had not experienced the

deliverance he cried out for. He was still just as discouraged then as he

was when he began writing.

This is raw and disturbing. But if we let ourselves enter into his pain

(as well as our own) we will see that his experience isn’t so unique. So what

encouragement is there in a text like this? Why would this be included in

the Bible? There is no triumph here. Only pain, despair, and fear.

We also read in Psalm 77:7-9, “Will the Lord spurn forever, and

never again be favorable? Has his steadfast love forever ceased? Are his

promises at an end for all time? Has God forgotten to be gracious? Has

he in anger shut up his compassion?”

Have you felt the Lord turn his back on you so that you questioned

whether he would ever look your way again? Have you felt that his love

for you has ended and that his promises were null and void? In the midst

of your pain have you cried out, “God where is your grace? Why will

you not comfort me?”

Waiting for the Morning 183

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 183

Of course we know intellectually that God does not forget to be gracious

and that he will indeed be compassionate. We know that he hasn’t

rejected us and that his steadfast love is forever. But there are times when

our pain is so deep that truths in our mind just can’t seem to penetrate

the darkness that surrounds our hearts.

Why Such Pain Is in the Bible

Where is the hope in Psalm 88? Didn’t Paul say in Romans 15:4, “For

whatever was written in former days was written for our instruction,

that through endurance and through the encouragement of the

Scriptures we might have hope”? Why, then, is such a hopeless psalm

like Psalm 88 in the Bible?

It is in the Bible for the time when your son has just died after living

for only twenty minutes and all that runs through your mind are

questions such as: “God, what were you thinking?” “Why didn’t you

help me?” “Why didn’t you save him?” “Why would you punish us for

moving halfway around the world in obedience to you to a place where

premature babies have no chance of survival?”—plus a million other

thoughts that you would never want another person to know, because

you are supposed to be a Christian who exults in the sovereignty of God.

This text is in the Bible so that when suffering and pain come and

we are between the affliction and the triumph in the midst of the questions,

pain, and clouds of doubt, we may see that what we are feeling is

normal. It has all been felt before, and all the questions have been asked

before. We are not the first. We are not alone. And we are not in danger

of losing our faith (at least not yet).

God is a big God who can handle our questions, our anger, and our

pain. This is clear from the fact that God has many psalms and verses

in his Word in which godly people are struggling with doubts about his

goodness and care for them. It is especially clear from Psalm 88, which

doesn’t even end with a message of hope.

God cares about us in the midst of the pain. His goal isn’t just to get

us out of the pain to the joy; he also wants us to see that he is for us and

with us in the pain. It is true that weeping may tarry for the night, but

joy comes in the morning (Ps. 30:5). The morning will dawn and God

will remove every tear (Rev. 21:4), but God is not just concerned about

184 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 184

the morning, the new day when you can shout for joy. He is with us even

in the night when there is nothing but weeping, when the tears are so

thick that we can’t see. When we are in the deepest pit and darkness

weighs on our souls and God feels so absent that we wonder if he is even

real, this psalm reminds us that he is with us even then.

The Pain of Jesus

Even more remarkable than the experience of the psalmist in Psalm 88

is the experience of the Son of God on Calvary. The night he was

betrayed he went to Gethsemane in order to pray. He brought Peter,

James, and John with him that they might pray for him and comfort

him, for he told them, “My soul is very sorrowful, even to death; remain

here, and watch with me” (Matt. 26:38).

Jesus, the Divine Son, was full of sorrow, and his sorrow was so

deep that it was like death. Isaiah said he was “a man of sorrows, and

acquainted with grief; and as one from whom men hide their faces” (Isa.

53:3). He sought comfort from his friends, and yet they failed him by

falling asleep in his time of need and then abandoning him when he was

arrested. He was left alone to face the pain and suffering. Does this not

sound like the experience of the psalmist?

His agony was so intense and severe that his “sweat became like

great drops of blood falling down to the ground” (Luke 22:44). The

author of Hebrews tells us, “In the days of his flesh, Jesus offered up

prayers and supplications, with loud cries and tears, to him who was

able to save him from death, and he was heard because of his reverence”

(5:7). Jesus offered up “loud cries and tears,” which are not incompatible

with faith in God. In his cries and tears, Jesus was heard by the one

able to save him from death, yet he still died. He asked for the cup to

pass, but was resigned to do his Father’s will, even though it would cost

him his life. God heard his prayers, but rather than save him from pain

and death, he chose for Jesus to walk on the road of suffering so that he

might receive the greater joy of resurrection.

And let us not forget that his death was no ordinary death. First of

all, it was death on a cross, one of the most excruciating forms of execution

ever devised. But even more, it was a death in which he bore the

wrath of God for all the people of God. The intensity of this wrath is

Waiting for the Morning 185

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 185

remarkable, for it would take us all of eternity to pay the penalty for our

sins and God’s wrath would never be quenched, yet Christ bore God’s

complete wrath for billions and he did it in a matter of hours. No wonder

he cried out, “My God, my God, why have you forsaken me?”

(Matt. 27:46).

When we read the story of Christ’s passion, we often gloss over this

astounding statement. The Son of God who is the Father’s beloved and

delight was forsaken. He was abandoned and left all alone. Being forsaken

by his friends was one thing, but being forsaken by his Father was

quite another. The depth of this pain is greater than we can know. There

has been no greater pain in all of history.

Why is the depth of Christ’s pain significant for us? Because “we do

not have a high priest who is unable to sympathize with our weaknesses,

but one who in every respect has been tempted as we are, yet without

sin” (Heb 4:15). In the midst of our pain we may feel alone and believe

that no one has hurt as badly as we hurt. But it isn’t true. Jesus Christ

has felt such pain; indeed, he has felt pain that would have destroyed us.

He is able to sympathize. “Let us then with confidence draw near to the

throne of grace, that we may receive mercy and find grace to help in time

of need” (Heb. 4:16).

Hope for the Pain

I hope you see that this depth of pain is normal. I want us to see that

Jesus knows how badly it hurts. We don’t need to feel shame because

there is pain in our suffering. As I said before, if there was no pain, it

wouldn’t be called suffering.

Jesus’ cry, “My God, my God, why have you forsaken me?” was not

only a spontaneous outburst of emotion, it was also a quote from Psalm

22, which has much to say about Christ and his suffering as well as his

hope.

David wrote Psalm 22 about himself and as a messianic prophecy.

“My God, my God, why have you forsaken me? Why are you so far

from saving me, from the words of my groaning? O my God, I cry by

day, but you do not answer, and by night, but I find no rest” (vv. 1-2).

His experience was very similar to what we saw in Psalm 88, but he goes

a step further. He feels forsaken, has not received an answer, and finds

186 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 186

no rest, but then he says, “Yet you are holy, enthroned on the praises of

Israel” (v. 3).

He was abandoned, but he did not forget one very important

thing—the fact that God is holy. How does regarding God as holy help

us in the midst of our suffering? What help is this when we are trapped

in the pit and the darkness threatens to suffocate us?

It helps us in two ways. First, in the midst of our pain, God’s holiness

is a life preserver that we can cling to in order to keep us from falling

into the abyss. Second, it is because God is holy that he himself will keep

us from falling into the abyss.

Isaiah had a remarkable glimpse of God’s holiness when he heard

the seraphim calling out to one another, “Holy, holy, holy is the LORD

of hosts; the whole earth is full of his glory!” (Isa. 6:3). What did they

see about God that led them to make such a declaration?

The seraphim were compelled to make the declaration of God’s

holiness on the basis of his entire character and all of his attributes. It is

his divine perfection that causes them to humble themselves by covering

their eyes and feet. They see God’s utter uniqueness, that he is totally

unlike any other thing, but even more they see that he is glorious in his

uniqueness. As Moses declared in Exodus 15:11, “Who is like you, O

LORD, among the gods? Who is like you, majestic in holiness, awesome

in glorious deeds, doing wonders?” John Piper expresses this well:

God is holy in His absolute uniqueness. Everything else belongs to a

class. We are human; Rover is a dog; the oak is a tree; Earth is a planet;

the Milky Way is one of a billion galaxies; Gabriel is an angel; Satan

is a demon. But only God is God. And therefore He is holy, utterly different,

distinct, unique. All else is creation. He alone creates. All else

begins. He alone always was. All else depends. He alone is self-sufficient.

And therefore the holiness of God is synonymous with His infinite

value. His glory is the shining forth of His holiness. His holiness

is His intrinsic worth—an utterly unique excellence.2

So it isn’t just that God is absolutely unique, but his absolute

uniqueness makes him supremely valuable. And all of this is meant to

be conveyed in the word “holy.” God’s holiness is not simply one of

Waiting for the Morning 187

2 John Piper, Brothers, We Are Not Professionals (Nashville: Broadman & Holman, 2002), 12-13.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 187

many attributes; it is the beauty of all he is. So when we say God is holy,

what we mean is that God is God, the only God.

This is our hope in the midst of suffering. There is no one more powerful.

There is no one more loving. There is no one more merciful. There

is no one more compassionate. There is no other God but God. He alone

is Savior, and he alone is Lord. It is because God is holy that we can have

confidence that he will fulfill his promises to us, that his power will be

used to help us, that his mercy will be poured out on us, and that his

wisdom will design our suffering and everything else in our lives to work

together for our good.

After the death of our son Owen, my wife and I often had deep,

haunting questions about God and his purposes. But any time we were

tempted to turn away from him, we were always confronted with the

question, “If not God, then who? If not God, then what?”

Could we abandon the truth and turn to some other religion? There

is no hope for us there, for then we would have to save ourselves. Could

we become atheists? There is no hope for us there, for then life would

be futile. Could we turn to materialism? There is no hope for us there,

for material things can’t bring back our son, nor can they keep us from

suffering in the future. There is no hope anywhere else because God

alone is God and he alone is holy.

So in our suffering we cling to God in his holiness. And quite honestly,

there are times when we cling to him simply because we see that

there isn’t anything else to hold on to. But I think this is okay. God wants

us to see that there isn’t anything else to cling to.

Where Is God in Our Pain?

But there is more hope for us, for it is because God is holy that he holds

onto us. Isaiah writes:

Fear not, for I have redeemed you; I have called you by name, you are

mine. When you pass through the waters, I will be with you; and

through the rivers, they shall not overwhelm you; when you walk

through fire you shall not be burned, and the flame shall not consume

you. For I am the LORD your God, the Holy One of Israel, your

Savior.” (Isa. 43:1-3)

188 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 188

God tells us that we need not fear. Why? Because he himself is the one

who helps us. He is the one who holds our right hand and doesn’t let go.

Our Redeemer isn’t just anyone. Our Redeemer is the Holy One of Israel.

It is because God is holy that we can have confidence that he will fulfill his

promises to us. If he isn’t holy, he can make all the promises in the world

and yet not have any intention or even ability to fulfill them. But he is holy,

and therefore his promises are sure. When he says that he will never leave

us nor forsake us, he means it. When he says that he works all things

together for the good of those who love him, he does it.

Clinging to God in the Midst of Pain

Experiencing grief and pain is like falling off a cliff. Everything has been

turned upside down, and we are no longer in control. As we fall, we see

one and only one tree that is growing out from the rock face. So we grab

hold of it and cling to it with all our might. This tree is our holy God.

He alone can keep us from falling headfirst to our doom. There simply

aren’t any other trees to grab. So we cling to this tree (the holy God) with

all our might.

But what we didn’t realize is that when we fell and grabbed the tree

our arm actually became entangled in the branches, so that in reality, the

tree is holding us. We hold on to keep from falling, but what we don’t

realize is that we can’t fall because the tree has us. We are safe. God, in

his holiness, is keeping us and showing mercy to us. We may not be aware

of it, but it is true. He is with us even in the deepest and darkest pit.

Conclusion

Indescribable pain and grief is normal, even for Christians; indeed, Peter

tells us, “Beloved, do not be surprised at the fiery trial when it comes

upon you to test you, as though something strange were happening to

you” (1 Pet. 4:12). Our fears, anger, doubts, and everything else we feel

in our pain don’t make God nervous or uncomfortable with us. God still

loves us, and he is still for us.

When we are in the pit of despair we must look around and see that

only God can bring us out. There is no other hope. And what’s more is

that God himself is committed to bringing us out. He alone is holy and

therefore he alone can help us. Yes, the night is long and the weeping

Waiting for the Morning 189

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 189

intense, but the morning is coming. And as we wait for the coming

dawn, the return of the Son of God, we can know that we are not alone.

Jesus himself endured the long night of weeping, and God promises to

carry us even when we don’t feel his arms around us.

While we are on earth, there often will be deliverance from many

of our sufferings—there will be many mornings that will dawn and bring

with them joy. But the ultimate morning comes when Jesus returns. That

is when the true shout for joy will come and when all tears will be wiped

away (Rev. 21:4). “And the city [will have] no need of sun or moon to

shine on it, for the glory of God [will give] it light, and its lamp [will be]

the Lamb. . . . And night will be no more” (Rev. 21:23; 22:5).

190 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 190

Sometimes hope is hard to come by. Like the other week when I

visited my friend Gracie Sutherlin in the hospital. Gracie has been

volunteering at our Joni and Friends Family Retreats for many years,

and despite her age of sixty-one, she’s always been energetic and active

with the disabled children at our camps. All that changed a month ago

when she broke her neck in a tragic accident. Gracie has always been

happy and buoyant, but when I wheeled into the intensive care unit to

visit her, I did not even recognize the woman lying in the hospital bed.

With tubes running in and out of her, a ventilator shoved down her

throat, and Crutchfield tongs screwed into her skull, Gracie looked completely

helpless. She couldn’t even breathe on her own. All she could do

was open and close her eyes.

I sat there by Gracie’s hospital bed. I read Scriptures to her. I sang

to her: “Be still my soul, the Lord is on thy side.” I leaned as far forward

as I could and whispered, “Oh, Gracie, Gracie, remember. Hope is a

good thing, maybe the best of things. And no good thing ever dies.” She

blinked at that point, and I knew she recognized the phrase. It’s a line

from the movie The Shawshank Redemption.

The Shawshank Redemption is a story about two men—Andy

Dufresne, who is unjustly convicted and sentenced to life imprisonment,

and his friend Red. After many hard years in prison, Andy opens up a

path of promise for himself and for Red. One day in the prison yard, he

Hope . . . the Best of Things

chapter 9

Joni Eareckson Tada

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 191

instructs Red that if he is ever freed from Shawshank, he should go to a

certain town and find a certain tree in a certain cornfield, to push aside

the rocks to uncover a little tin can, and to use the money in the can to

make it across the border to a little Mexican fishing village. Not long

after this conversation, Andy escapes from prison and Red is paroled.

Red, dutiful friend that he is, finds the cornfield, the tree, the rocks, the

tin can, the money—and a letter, in which Andy has written, “Red, never

forget. Hope is a good thing, maybe the best of things. And no good

thing ever dies.” At that moment, Red realizes he has two choices: “Get

busy livin’ or get busy dyin’.”

Sadly, right now, it appears as though my friend Gracie is busy

dying. She is stuck at UCLA waiting for surgery on her neck, and an

infection in her body is running rampant. The doctors are trying to get

her white blood cell count down, but it doesn’t look promising. Now

when visitors come in to see her, she shuts her eyes against them. Oh,

Gracie, hold onto hope. It’s a good thing, maybe the best of things.

Hope Is Hard to Come By

But hope is hard to come by. I should know. I remember the time when

I was once busy dying. It wasn’t long after I had broken my neck in a

diving accident that I spent one particularly hopeless week in the hospital.

I had endured long surgeries to shave down the bony prominences

on my back, and it was a long recovery. I had lost a great deal of weight.

And for almost three weeks I was forced to lie facedown on what’s called

a Stryker frame—a long, flat canvas sandwich where they put you faceup

for three hours and then strap another piece of canvas on you and flip

you facedown to lie there for another three hours.

Trapped facedown, staring at the floor hour after hour, my thoughts

grew dark and hopeless. All I could think was, “Great, God. Way to go.

I’m a brand-new Christian. This is the way you treat your new

Christians? I’m young in the faith. I prayed for a closer walk with you.

If this is your idea of an answer to prayer, I am never going to trust you

with another prayer again. I can’t believe that I have to lie facedown and

do nothing but count the tiles on the floor on this stupid torture rack. I

hate my existence.” I asked the hospital staff to turn out the lights, close

the blinds, close the door, and if anybody came in—visitor, parent,

192 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 192

nurse—I just grunted. I justified it all. I rationalized that God shouldn’t

mind that I would be bitter—after all, I was paralyzed. And I didn’t care

how much joy was set before me. This was one cross I was not going to

bear without a battle.

My thoughts got darker because no longer was my bitterness a tiny

trickle. It had become a raging torrent, and in the middle of the night I

would imagine God holding my sin up before my face and saying lovingly

but firmly, “Joni, what are you going to do about this? What are

you going to do about this attitude? It is wrong. This sin is wrong. Get

rid of it.” But I, hurting and stubborn, preferred my sins. I preferred my

peevish, snide, small-minded, mean-spirited comments, grunting at people

when they walked in or out, and letting food drool out of my mouth.

Those were sins that I had made my own.

You know what it’s like when you make sin your own. You housebreak

it. You domesticate it. You shield it from the Spirit’s scrutiny. I did

not want to let go of the sick, strange comfort of my own misery.

So God gave me some help. About one week into that three-week

stint of lying facedown, staring at the floor, waiting for my back to heal,

I got hit with a bad case of the flu. And suddenly, not being able to move

was peanuts compared to not being able to breathe. I was claustrophobic.

I was suffering. I was gasping for breath. I could not move. All was

hopeless. All was gone. I was falling backward, head over heels, down

for the count, decimated.

And I broke. I thought, “I can’t do this. I can’t live this way. I would

rather die than face this.” Little did I realize that I was echoing the sentiments

of the apostle Paul, who in 2 Corinthians 1:8 talks of being “so

utterly burdened beyond [his] strength that [he] despaired of life itself.”

Indeed, he even had in his heart the sentence of death. “O God, I don’t

have the strength to face this. I would rather die. Help me.” That was

my prayer. That was my anguish.

God Can Raise Us Out of Hopelessness

That week a friend came to see me in the hospital while I was still facedown

counting the tiles. She put a Bible on a little stool in front of me,

and stuck my mouth stick in my mouth so that I could flip its pages, and

my friend told me to turn to Psalm 18. There I read: “In my distress I

Hope . . . the Best of Things 193

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 193

called upon the LORD; to my God I cried for help. From his temple he

heard my voice, and my cry to him reached his ears. Then the earth

reeled and rocked. . . . Smoke went up from his nostrils. . . . He bowed

the heavens and came down. . . . He sent from on high, he took me. . . .

He rescued me”—and here’s the best part—“because he delighted in

me” (vv. 6-19).

I had prayed for God to help me. Little did I realize that God was

parting heaven and earth, striking bolts of lightning, and thundering the

foundations of the planet to reach down and rescue me because he

delighted in me. He showed me in 2 Corinthians 1:9 that all this had

happened so that I would “rely not on [myself] but on God who raises

the dead.” And that’s all God was looking for. He wanted me to reckon

myself dead—dead to sin—because if God can raise the dead, you’d better

believe he could raise me out of my hopelessness. He would take it

from there. And he has been doing the same for nearly four decades.

Meeting Suffering on God’s Terms

Now don’t be fooled—that was no isolated incident. I didn’t just leave

my desperation back there in the hospital. No, desperation is part of a

quadriplegic’s life each and every day. For me, suffering is still that jackhammer

breaking apart my rocks of resistance every day. It’s still the

chisel that God is using to chip away at my self-sufficiency and my selfmotivation

and my self-consumption. Suffering is still that sheepdog

snapping and barking at my heels, driving me down the road to Calvary

where otherwise I do not want to go. My human nature, my flesh, does

not want to endure hardship like a good soldier (2 Tim. 2:3) or follow

Christ’s example (1 Pet. 2:21) or welcome a trial as friend. No, my flesh

does not want to rejoice in suffering (Rom. 5:3) or be holy as he is holy

(1 Pet. 1:15). But it is at Calvary, at the cross, where I meet suffering on

God’s terms.

And it happens almost every morning. Please know that I am no

expert at this wheelchair thing. I’m no professional at being a

quadriplegic. There are so many mornings when I wake up and I can

hear my girlfriend come to the front door to help me get out of bed and

get ready for the day. She goes to the kitchen, turns on the water, and

starts brewing coffee. I know that in a few moments she’s going to come

194 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 194

gliding into the bedroom, where she’ll greet me with a happy, “Good

morning!” And I am lying there with my eyes closed, thinking, “O God,

I can’t do this. I am so tired. I don’t know how I’m going to make it to

lunchtime. O God, I’m already thinking about how good it’s going to

feel when I get back to bed tonight and put my head on this pillow.”

I’m sure you have felt that way at some point. Maybe you feel that

way every morning. But Psalm 10:17 says, “O LORD, you hear the desire

of the afflicted; you will strengthen their heart; you will incline your ear.”

“O God,” I often pray in the morning, “God, I cannot do this. I cannot

do this thing called quadriplegia. I have no resources for this. I have no

strength for this—but you do. You’ve got resources. You’ve got strength.

I can’t do quadriplegia, but I can do all things through you as you

strengthen me [Phil. 4:13]. I have no smile for this woman who’s going

to walk into my bedroom in a moment. She could be having coffee with

another friend, but she’s chosen to come here to help me get up. O God,

please may I borrow your smile?”

And just as he promises, he hears the cry of the afflicted, and before

even 7:30 in the morning he has sent joy straight from heaven. Then,

when my girlfriend comes through the door with that steaming cup of

coffee, I can greet her with a happy “Hello!” borrowed from God.

To this you, too, were called. To this you were called because Christ

suffered for you, leaving you this kind of example that you should follow.

He endured the cross for the joy that was set before him (Heb.

12:2). Should we expect to do less? So then, join me; boast in your afflictions.

Delight in your infirmities. Glory in your weaknesses, for then you

know that Christ’s power rests in you (2 Cor. 12:9). You might be handicapped

on all sides, but you’re not crushed. You might be perplexed,

but you’re not in despair. You might be knocked down, but you’re not

knocked out. Because it says in 2 Corinthians 4:7-12 that every day we

experience something of the death of the Lord Jesus Christ, so that in

turn we might experience the power of the life of Jesus in these bodies

of ours.

Do you know who the truly handicapped people are? They are the

ones—and many of them are Christians—who hear the alarm clock go

off at 7:30 in the morning, throw back the covers, jump out of bed, take

a quick shower, choke down breakfast, and zoom out the front door.

They do all this on automatic pilot without stopping once to acknowl-

Hope . . . the Best of Things 195

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 195

edge their Creator, their great God who gives them life and strength each

day. Christian, if you live that way, do you know that James 4:6 says God

opposes you? “God opposes the proud, but gives grace to the humble.”

And who are the humble? They are people who are humiliated by

their weaknesses. Catheterized people whose leg bags spring leaks on

somebody else’s brand-new carpet. Immobilized people who must be

fed, cleansed, dressed, and taken care of like infants. Once-active people

crippled by chronic aches and pains. God opposes the proud but

gives grace to the humble, so then submit yourselves to God. Resist the

devil, who loves nothing more than to discourage you and corrode your

joy. Resist him and he will flee you. Draw near to God in your affliction,

and he will draw near to you (James 4:6-8). Take up your cross daily

and follow the Lord Jesus (Luke 9:23).

I must qualify that last statement. Please know that when I take up

my cross every day I am not talking about my wheelchair. My wheelchair

is not my cross to bear. Neither is your cane or walker your cross. Neither

is your dead-end job or your irksome in-laws. Your cross to bear is not

your migraine headaches, not your sinus infection, not your stiff joints.

That is not your cross to bear. My cross is not my wheelchair; it is my

attitude. Your cross is your attitude about your dead-end job and your

in-laws. It is your attitude about your aches and pains. Any complaints,

any grumblings, any disputings or murmurings, any anxieties, any worries,

any resentments or anything that hints of a raging torrent of bitterness—

these are the things God calls me to die to daily. For when I do, I

not only become like him in his death (that is, taking up my cross and

dying to the sin that he died for on his cross), but the power of the resurrection

puts to death any doubts, fears, grumblings, and disputings.

And I get to become like him in his life. I get to experience the intimate

fellowship of sharing in his sufferings, the sweetness and the preciousness

of the Savior. I become holy as he is holy. O God, “you will make me full

of gladness with your presence” (Acts 2:28).

And to be in God’s presence is to be holy. Not to be sinless, but to

sin less. To let suffering sandblast you to the core, revealing the stuff of

which you are made. And it’s never pretty—the sin we housebreak and

domesticate and try to make our own—is it? No. Suffering sandblasts

that stuff, leaving us bare and falling head over heels, down for the count

and decimated.

196 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 196

Meeting Joy on God’s Terms

It is when your soul has been blasted bare, when you feel raw and

undone, that you can be better bonded to the Savior. And then you not

only meet suffering on God’s terms, but you meet joy on God’s terms.

And then God—as he does every morning at 7:30 when I cry to him out

of my affliction—happily shares his gladness, his joy flooding over

heaven’s walls filling my heart in a waterfall of delight, which then in

turn always streams out to others in a flood of encouragement, and then

erupts back to God in an ecstatic fountain of praise. He gets your heart

pumping for heaven. He injects his peace, power, and perspective into

your spiritual being. He imparts a new way of looking at your hardships.

He puts a song in your heart.

I experienced this kind of elation last year when I was in Thailand.

I am the senior disability representative with the Lausanne Committee

for World Evangelization, and last year thirty-six disability ministry

workers from around the world, most of them disabled themselves,

gathered at the Lausanne conference in Thailand. There was a tall, beautiful

African from Cameroon named Nungu Magdalene Manyi, a polio

survivor who has made it her life’s ambition to rescue other disabled

infants who are left on riverbanks to starve to death because a disability

is viewed as a curse or a bad omen by local witch doctors. Pastor

Noel Fernández, blind, using his white cane, came all the way from

Cuba. Therese Swinters, another polio survivor in a wheelchair, joined

us from Belgium. There was Carminha Speirs from Portugal, walking

with her crutches. There we came from around the world—thirty-six of

us. And we were celebrating the kinds of things I’ve been talking about

in this chapter—how when we boast in our affliction and glory in our

weaknesses, God’s power is poured out upon us.

By the end of the week, we happy people, our ragtag group of disabled

individuals, looked around at this conference and saw that nobody

else seemed to be having fun. The conference was a bit stuffy, as conferences

can be when we rehearse theology at one another rather than

live it with one another. Well, our group of thirty-six was having so

much fun praising the Lord, our joy just spilled out of our workshop

room. It flooded down the hallway. It spilled over the hotel mezzanine

level. And before we knew it, there we were in this fancy resort hotel

Hope . . . the Best of Things 197

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 197

lobby, and we were a procession of praise, singing, “We are marching

in the light of God, we are marching in the light of God.” I wish you

could have heard me singing and seen me dancing. Our procession of

praise was an audiovisual display of 2 Corinthians 2:14-15: “Thanks be

to God, who in Christ always leads us in triumphal procession, and

through us spreads the fragrance of the knowledge of him everywhere.”

You see, we are to God the fragrance of Christ. The world can’t see

Jesus endure suffering with grace because he’s not here on earth, but you

and I are. And we can fill up in our flesh what is lacking in his afflictions

(Col. 1:24), and in so doing become that sweet fragrance, that perfume,

that aroma of Christ to God. What a blessing, a privilege, an honor!

What elation! And if I am to remind the Father of his precious Son who

suffered, the apple of his eye turning brown with the rot of my sin; if I

am to follow in his steps, then it is a gift to suffer alongside him, to take

up my cross daily and follow him.

“Since therefore Christ suffered in the flesh, arm yourselves with the

same way of thinking, for whoever has suffered in the flesh has ceased

from sin” (1 Pet. 4:1). I’m so glad the apostle Peter included that,

because without it we would look at suffering and think that it gives us

cause for bitterness, worry, self-indulgence, or some other sin, because

we have “earned it.” But do not use your affliction as an excuse to sin.

Rather, “whoever has suffered in the flesh has ceased from sin.” So we

can endure hardship like a good soldier (2 Tim. 2:3). We can welcome

a trial as a friend. We can face the fiery ordeal that is about to set us

ablaze (1 Pet. 4:12). We can rejoice in the hope of the glory of God

(Rom. 5:2). Not only so, but we can rejoice in our sufferings because we

know that suffering produces perseverance (Rom. 5:3).

Hope Never Disappoints

Tomorrow morning I will wake up, and I guarantee you I’m going to be

tired, my neck is going to hurt, my back is going to ache, and I’m going

to say, “O Lord God, I just cannot fly all the way across the ocean.

OLord, sixteen hours on a plane. I cannot do that. Jesus, I can’t do that.”

But I will do it because suffering produces endurance, and endurance produces

character, and character produces hope, and hope never, ever, ever

disappoints us (Rom. 5:3-4). Nothing can disappoint us. Nothing can rob

198 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 198

his joy in us, and nothing can rob our joy in him, neither height nor depth

nor things to come nor things past nor muscular dystrophy nor osteogenesis

imperfecta, not spinal cord injury, or multiple sclerosis (Rom. 8:39),

for all things are yours (1 Cor. 3:21). For you are of Christ, and Christ is

of God (1 Cor. 3:23). Therefore, you can be sorrowful yet always rejoicing;

you can have nothing and yet possess everything (2 Cor. 6:10).

Passing on the Hope to Others

We are so rich. We’ve been given so much insight, so much knowledge.

And to whom much is given, much shall be required; to whom much is

entrusted, much shall be demanded (Luke 12:48). I may have a

wheelchair, but there is a need for eighteen million wheelchairs around

the world. So I cannot sit here in America on my backside and be content.

No. Ken and I will head to Africa with our Wheels for the World

team to deliver not only terrain-appropriate wheelchairs, but also Bibles,

and to give the good news and to teach disability ministry training in

churches and to let people there know that cerebral palsy is not a curse

from a local witch doctor. We will shed the light of Jesus who always

tells the truth—not only about redemption but about rickets, not only

about the atonement but about autism. We will shine his light. The way

I see it, I’ve been given so much, I must pass on the blessing. We simply

must, must pass on the hope to others.

We must pass on the hope to people like Gracie, with her eyes shut

in UCLA, at this point perhaps hoping that God will take her home

before that operation. To people like her and to people like Beverly and

Ron. Beverly is a woman who wrote me the following e-mail a while

back:

Dear Joni,

I’m out of hope. [But I am wondering if] you might be able to help

my husband, Ron, who was in an accident last year.

My husband is a pastor. The accident left him a quadriplegic.

When he came home from the hospital he continued to pastor from his

wheelchair, but then two months later he was back in the hospital with

an infection. And there have been many infections since then and many

visits to the hospital. My husband, Ron, began to become depressed.

He has now resigned from his church, and he does not get out of bed.

Hope . . . the Best of Things 199

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 199

He does not talk. And if he answers a question, he only says, “I don’t

know.”

I am at a loss. He does not want the lights on in his room and no

TV. He does not want to live, and he does not care about our family.

We have no medical insurance. We all seem to be falling through the

cracks. My husband feels useless and hopeless. We need help.

How do you respond to something like that? Well, I responded by

dialing 411 and tracking down Ron and Beverly’s phone number. I gave

them a call, Beverly answered, and I shared with her that I had received

her e-mail. I talked and prayed with her over the phone. Finally I asked,

“Any chance your husband, Ron, might want to talk to a fellow

quadriplegic?” She was delighted that I was even interested. She

knocked on his door, and he allowed her to tuck the phone receiver

under his ear. And although he would not respond, I talked a little bit

of shop about quadriplegia. I talked about urinary infections and bowel

programs and difficulties breathing, and I thought I detected a grunt on

the other end.

I wanted to move beyond those topics, however, and bridge the conversation

to spiritual things. I thought, “This man’s a pastor. Surely he

knows the Word of God.” So I started to share with him several favorite

Scriptures that have sustained me through the toughest of times, for

example, James 1:2-4 (“Count it all joy, my brothers, when you meet

trials of various kinds, for you know that the testing of your faith produces

steadfastness. And let steadfastness have its full effect, that you

may be perfect and complete, lacking in nothing”) and Romans 8:18

(“For I consider that the sufferings of this present time are not worth

comparing with the glory that is to be revealed to us”). Still silence on

the other end. I even sang to him. Nothing.

Finally I did the only thing I could think of that I hadn’t already

tried. I asked Ron if he had ever seen a movie called The Shawshank

Redemption.

“Why, yes, I have,” he said. I couldn’t believe it. He had responded.

So I went on, “Well, Ron, do you remember when Red found Andy

Dufresne’s letter? Do you remember what it said?”

“I . . . I think so. ‘Hope is a good thing, maybe the best of things.

And no good thing ever dies.’”

200 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 200

“Ron, there are ten thousand other quadriplegics like you and me

across America, not to mention who knows how many beyond the borders

of this country. And all of them were lying in bed this morning wondering

whether or not they should get busy living or get busy dying. Ron,

I’m going to make a choice to get busy living. Do you want to join me

today?”

“Yes, ma’am. Yes, I do.”

“Good for you, Ron, because now you’re in the fellowship of sharing

not only my suffering but Christ’s sufferings. And he’ll give you the

grace one day at a time, one day at a time. Sufficient unto this day are

the evil and the trials and the troubles that you’re going to face.”

He put his wife back on the phone, and I proceeded to tell her about

our family retreats. I asked, “Beverly, do you think you could get your

husband, Ron, to one of our family retreats?” I promised her that our

office would provide scholarship money, which we always do to families

who are struggling with medical expenses. And sure enough, that

summer Ron and Beverly went to a Joni and Friends family retreat in

Texas. Shortly after they returned home, I received another e-mail from

Beverly:

Dear Joni,

Ron asked me to be sure and write you because this past month

has been wonderful. Camp was a huge blessing, and I don’t think we

realized how much of a blessing it was until we got home. We have

made new friends for a lifetime. Ron wants to find things that he can

do which will get him out of the house more. I told him that whenever

he’s ready we can hook up our camper to our truck and go minister so

he can share his testimony all over the United States. For the first time

in a year he did not say no. He grinned. Thank you. We have hope.

“Hope is a good thing, maybe the best of things. And no good thing

ever dies.” But we live in a dark, diseased world under the curse of sin.

Hell is real. And God owes this utterly rebellious planet absolutely nothing.

But aren’t you glad that he is a God of love, not wanting anyone to

perish? And he is out to convince this unbelieving, sarcastic, skeptical

world of his power to save, his abilities to sustain, and his desire to share

his hope.

Hope . . . the Best of Things 201

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 201

Misery May Love Company but Joy Craves a Crowd

We have been given so much. Jesus said, “To you it has been given to

know the secrets of the kingdom of heaven” (Matt. 13:11). And “everyone

to whom much was given, of him much will be required, and from

him to whom they entrusted much, they will demand the more” (Luke

12:48). God mandates that we go out into the streets and the alleys and

the highways and the byways. He mandates that we find the poor, the

blind, the disabled, and the lame, and help them get busy living, because

misery might love company, but joy craves a crowd. And the Father and

the Son and the Holy Spirit crave a crowd of joy, joy spilling over and

splashing and filling the hearts of thirsty people in this world who are

absolutely dehydrated from a lack of hope. They need help from God

on high. The Father and the Son and the Holy Spirit’s plan is to rescue

humans. The Father is gathering a crowd, an inheritance that is pure and

perfect and blameless, to join him in the river of joy and the whirlwind

of pleasure. And he is heaven-bent on gathering glad and happy souls

who will make it their eternal ambition to worship his Son in the joy of

the Holy Spirit. God is love. And the wish of love is to drench with

delight those who have stepped into the fellowship of sharing in his Son’s

suffering.

And soon, perhaps sooner than we think, the Father, the Son, and

the Holy Spirit are going to get their wish. Perhaps sooner than we think,

God will close the curtain on sin and suffering and disease and death,

and we are going to step into the Niagara Falls that will be.

And one day I’m going to leave this wheelchair behind. I cannot

wait. I may have suffered with Christ on earth, but one day in heaven

I’m going to reign with him. I may have tasted the pains of living on this

planet, but one day I’m going to eat from the tree of life in the pleasure

of heaven, and it’s all going to happen in the twinkling of an eye. The

Lord’s overcoming of this world will be the lifting of the curtain on our

five senses, and we shall see him and we shall be like him, and we shall

see the whole universe in plain sight.

I think at first the shock of the joy that will come from reveling in

the waterfall of love and pleasure that is the Trinity may burn with a brilliant

newness of being glorified, but in the next instant we will be at

peace. We will be drenched with delight. We will feel at home as though

202 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 202

it were always this way, as though we were born for such a place—

because we were!

I will look up. And walking toward me will be my husband, Ken. I

know he loves me on earth, but I am just a hint, an omen, a foreshadowing

of the Joni that I’ll be in heaven. And when he sees me he’ll say,

“So this is what I loved about you all those years on earth.” And I will

see Ron and Beverly striding toward me, their souls’ capacities stretched

because of suffering, stretched for joy and pleasure and worship and service

in heaven. Their souls will be large and spacious because they chose

to boast in their affliction rather than wallow in sadness and self-pity.

It is my prayer that Jesus will look at Gracie and he will say to her,

“I know you. You came to me hemorrhaging human strength, and I felt

power go out of me, and I touched you and gave you grace upon grace

upon grace.”

Romans 8:18 says that we can consider our present sufferings not

worth comparing with the glory that will be revealed in us. I have shared

this before, but I must say it again. For I sure hope I can bring this

wheelchair to heaven. Now, I know that’s not theologically correct. But

I hope to bring it and put it in a little corner of heaven, and then in my

new, perfect, glorified body, standing on grateful glorified legs, I’ll stand

next to my Savior, holding his nail-pierced hands. I’ll say, “Thank you,

Jesus,” and he will know that I mean it, because he knows me. He’ll recognize

me from the fellowship we’re now sharing in his sufferings. And

I will say, “Jesus, do you see that wheelchair? You were right when you

said that in this world we would have trouble, because that thing was a

lot of trouble. But the weaker I was in that thing, the harder I leaned on

you. And the harder I leaned on you, the stronger I discovered you to

be. It never would have happened had you not given me the bruising of

the blessing of that wheelchair.”

Then the real ticker-tape parade of praise will begin. And all of earth

will join in the party.

And at that point Christ will open up our eyes to the great fountain

of joy in his heart for us beyond all that we ever experienced on earth.

And when we’re able to stop laughing and crying, the Lord Jesus really

will wipe away our tears. I find it so poignant that finally at the point

when I do have the use of my arms to wipe away my own tears, I won’t

have to, because God will.

Hope . . . the Best of Things 203

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 203

Hope may well be the greatest of things, because Romans 5:2 says,

“We rejoice in hope of the glory of God.” I get so excited thinking about

how Jesus and the Father and the Holy Spirit are anticipating on tiptoe

that wonderful day when we, the bride of Christ, spotless and pure and

blameless, will join them and swim with them in their river of pleasure.

I rejoice in that hope—the hope of God’s being glorified in himself and

our getting a chance to join him. The hope we wait for is our only hope,

the blessed hope, the glorious appearing of our great God and Savior,

Jesus Christ (Titus 2:13). It is Jesus for whom we have prevailed through

all of this suffering, and, oh, for the sweetness of melding one heart into

his in that intimacy that is so precious.

Is hope really all that hard to come by? I don’t think so. Our hope

is for the Desire of the nations. Our hope is the Healer of broken hearts,

the Friend of sinners, the God of all encouragement, the Father of all

comfort, the Lord of all hope. And it is my prayer that the eyes of your

heart might be enlightened so that you might know this hope to which

he has called you.

204 The Grace of God in Suffering

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 204

Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 205

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 206

Don’t Waste Your Cancer

John Piper and David Powlison

Five months after the Suffering and the Sovereignty of God conference,

two of the speakers—John Piper and David Powlison—were

diagnosed with prostate cancer. On the eve of his prostate surgery

(February 13, 2006) John Piper wrote the following article to reflect on

his situation and in order to minister grace and truth to others. (It should

be noted that these reflections constitute one way to minister pastorally

to those in need, but it’s not the only way to do so, and it is not the only

thing that needs to be said.) Shortly thereafter, David Powlison was diagnosed

with prostate cancer (March 3, 2006), and he provided additional

insights for this article.

John Piper:

I believe in God’s power to heal—by miracle and by medicine.

I believe it is right and good to pray for both kinds of healing.

Cancer is not wasted when it is healed by God. He gets the glory

and that is why cancer exists. So not to pray for healing may

waste your cancer. But healing is not God’s plan for everyone.

And there are many other ways to waste your cancer. I am praying

for myself and for you that we will not waste this pain.

1. You will waste your cancer if you do not believe it is designed for

you by God.

John Piper:

It will not do to say that God only uses our cancer but does not

design it. Not that his first design for creation was a Garden of

Eden with cancer. But the fall did not take God off guard. He

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 207

was planning redemption before creation (2 Tim. 1:9). He saw

it coming and permitted it. What God permits, he permits for

a reason. And that reason is his design. If God foresees molecular

developments becoming cancer, he can stop it or not. If he

does not, he has a purpose. Since he is infinitely wise, it is right

to call this purpose a design. Satan is real and causes many pleasures

and pains. But he is not ultimate. So when he strikes Job

with boils (Job 2:7), Job attributes it ultimately to God (2:10)

and the inspired writer agrees: “They . . . comforted him for all

the evil that the LORD had brought upon him” (42:11). If you

don’t believe your cancer is designed for you by God, you will

waste it.

David Powlison:

Recognizing God’s designing hand does not make you stoic or

dishonest or artificially buoyant. Instead, the reality of his

design elicits and channels your honest outcry to your one true

Savior. God’s design invites honest speech, rather than silencing

us into resignation. Consider the honesty of the Psalms, of

King Hezekiah (Isaiah 38), of Habakkuk 3. These people are

bluntly, believingly honest because they know that God is God

and set their hopes in him. Psalm 28 teaches you passionate,

direct prayer to God. He must hear you. He will hear you. He

will continue to work in you and your situation. This outcry

comes from your sense of need for help (28:1-2). Then name

your particular troubles to God (28:3-5). You are free to personalize

with your own particulars. Often in life’s “various trials”

(James 1:2), what you face does not exactly map onto the

particulars that David or Jesus faced, but the dynamic of faith

is the same. Having cast your cares on him who cares for you,

then voice your joy (Ps. 28:6-7): the God-given peace that is

beyond understanding. Finally, because faith always works out

into love, your personal need and joy will branch out into loving

concern for others (28:8-9). Illness can sharpen your awareness

of how thoroughly God has already and always been at

work in every detail of your life.

208 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 208

2. You will waste your cancer if you believe it is a curse

and not a gift.

John Piper:

“There is therefore now no condemnation for those who are in

Christ Jesus” (Rom. 8:1). “Christ redeemed us from the curse

of the law by becoming a curse for us” (Gal. 3:13). “There is

no enchantment against Jacob, no divination against Israel”

(Num. 23:23). “The LORD God is a sun and shield; the LORD

bestows favor and honor. No good thing does he withhold from

those who walk uprightly” (Ps. 84:11).

David Powlison:

The blessing comes in what God does for us, with us, through us.

He brings his great and merciful redemption onto the stage of the

curse. Your cancer, in itself, is one of those ten thousand “shadows

of death” (Ps. 23:4) that come upon each of us: all the

threats, losses, pains, incompletion, disappointment, evils. But in

his beloved children, our Father works a most kind good through

our most grievous losses: sometimes healing and restoring the

body (temporarily, until the resurrection of the dead to eternal

life), always sustaining and teaching us that we might know and

love him more simply. In the testing ground of evils, your faith

becomes deep and real, and your love becomes purposeful and

wise (James 1:2-5; 1 Pet. 1:3-9; Rom. 5:1-5; 8:18-39).

3. You will waste your cancer if you seek comfort from your odds

rather than from God.

John Piper:

The design of God in your cancer is not to train you in the rationalistic,

human calculation of odds. The world gets comfort

from their odds. Not Christians. Some count their chariots (percentages

of survival), and some count their horses (side effects

of treatment), but we trust in the name of the Lord our God (Ps.

20:7). God’s design is clear from 2 Corinthians 1:9: “We felt

Don’t Waste Your Cancer 209

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 209

that we had received the sentence of death. But that was to

make us rely not on ourselves but on God who raises the dead.”

The aim of God in our cancer (among a thousand other good

things) is to knock props out from under our hearts so that we

rely utterly on him.

David Powlison:

God himself is your comfort. He gives himself. The hymn “Be

Still My Soul” (by Katerina von Schlegel) reckons the odds the

right way: we are 100 percent certain to suffer, and Christ is 100

percent certain to meet us, to come for us, comfort us, and

restore love’s purest joys. The hymn “How Firm a Foundation”

reckons the odds the same way: you are 100 percent certain to

pass through grave distresses, and your Savior is 100 percent

certain to “be with you, your troubles to bless, and sanctify to

you your deepest distress.” With God, you aren’t playing percentages,

but living within certainties.

4. You will waste your cancer if you refuse to think about death.

John Piper:

We will all die, if Jesus postpones his return. Not to think about

what it will be like to leave this life and meet God is folly.

Ecclesiastes 7:2 says, “It is better to go to the house of mourning

[a funeral] than to go to the house of feasting, for this is the

end of all mankind, and the living will lay it to heart.” How can

you lay it to heart if you won’t think about it? Psalm 90:12 says,

“Teach us to number our days that we may get a heart of wisdom.”

Numbering your days means thinking about how few

there are and that they will end. How will you get a heart of

wisdom if you refuse to think about this? What a waste, if we

do not think about death.

David Powlison:

Paul describes the Holy Spirit as the unseen, inner “down payment”

on the certainty of life. By faith, the Lord gives a sweet

210 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 210

taste of the face-to-face reality of eternal life in the presence of

our God and Christ. We might also say that cancer is one

“down payment” on inevitable death, giving one bad taste of

the reality of our mortality. Cancer is a signpost pointing to

something far bigger: the last enemy that you must face. But

Christ has defeated this last enemy (1 Corinthians 15). Death

is swallowed up in victory. Cancer is merely one of the enemy’s

scouting parties, out on patrol. It has no final power if you are

a child of the resurrection, so you can look it in the eye.

5. You will waste your cancer if you think that “beating” cancer

means staying alive rather than cherishing Christ.

John Piper:

Satan’s and God’s designs in your cancer are not the same. Satan

designs to destroy your love for Christ. God designs to deepen

your love for Christ. Cancer does not win if you die. It wins if

you fail to cherish Christ. God’s design is to wean you off the

breast of the world and feast you on the sufficiency of Christ.

It is meant to help you say and feel, “I count everything as loss

because of the surpassing worth of knowing Christ Jesus my

Lord.” And to know that therefore “To live is Christ, and to

die is gain” (Phil. 3:8; 1:21).

David Powlison:

Cherishing Christ expresses the two core activities of faith: dire

need and utter joy. Many psalms cry out in a “minor key”: we

cherish our Savior by needing him to save us from real troubles,

real sins, real sufferings, real anguish. Many psalms sing out in

a “major key”: we cherish our Savior by delighting in him, loving

him, thanking him for all his benefits to us, rejoicing that

his salvation is the weightiest thing in the world and that he gets

last say. And many psalms start out in one key and end up in

the other. Cherishing Christ is not monochromatic; you live the

whole spectrum of human experience with him. To “beat” cancer

is to live knowing how your Father has compassion on his

Don’t Waste Your Cancer 211

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 211

beloved child, because he knows your frame, that you are but

dust. Jesus Christ is the way, the truth, and the life. To live is to

know him, whom to know is to love.

6. You will waste your cancer if you spend too much time reading

about cancer and not enough time reading about God.

John Piper:

It is not wrong to know about cancer. Ignorance is not a virtue.

But the lure to know more and more and the lack of zeal to

know God more and more is symptomatic of unbelief. Cancer

is meant to waken us to the reality of God. It is meant to put

feeling and force behind the command, “Let us know; let us

press on to know the LORD” (Hos. 6:3). It is meant to waken

us to the truth of Daniel 11:32, “The people who know their

God shall stand firm and take action.” It is meant to make

unshakable, indestructible oak trees out of us: “His delight is

in the law of the LORD, and on his law he meditates day and

night. He is like a tree planted by streams of water that yields

its fruit in its season, and its leaf does not wither. In all that he

does, he prospers” (Ps. 1:2-3). What a waste of cancer if we

read day and night about cancer and not about God.

David Powlison:

What is so for your reading is also true for your conversations

with others. People will often express their care and concern by

inquiring about your health. That’s good, but the conversation

easily gets stuck there. So tell them openly about your sickness,

seeking their prayers and counsel, but then change the direction

of the conversation by telling them what your God is faithfully

doing to sustain you with ten thousand mercies. Robert Murray

McCheyne wisely said, “For every one look at your sins, take

ten looks at Christ.” He was countering our tendency to reverse

that 10:1 ratio by brooding over our failings and forgetting the

Lord of mercy. What McCheyne says about our sins we can

also apply to our sufferings. For every one sentence you say to

212 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 212

others about your cancer, say ten sentences about your God,

and your hope, and what he is teaching you, and the small

blessings of each day. For every hour you spend researching or

discussing your cancer, spend ten hours researching and discussing

and serving your Lord. Relate all that you are learning

about cancer back to him and his purposes, and you won’t

become obsessed.

7. You will waste your cancer if you let it drive you into solitude

instead of deepen your relationships with manifest affection.

John Piper:

When Epaphroditus brought the gifts to Paul sent by the

Philippian church, he became ill and almost died. Paul tells the

Philippians, “He has been longing for you all and has been distressed

because you heard that he was ill” (Phil. 2:26). What an

amazing response! It does not say they were distressed that he

was ill, but that he was distressed because they heard he was ill.

That is the kind of heart God is aiming to create with cancer: a

deeply affectionate, caring heart for people. Don’t waste your

cancer by retreating into yourself.

David Powlison:

Our culture is terrified of facing death. It is obsessed with

medicine. It idolizes youth, health, and energy. It tries to hide any

signs of weakness or imperfection. You will bring huge blessing

to others by living openly, believingly, and lovingly within your

weaknesses. Paradoxically, moving out into relationships when

you are hurting and weak will actually strengthen others. “One

anothering” is a two-way street of generous giving and grateful

receiving. Your need gives others an opportunity to love. And

since love is always God’s highest purpose in you, too, you will

learn his finest and most joyous lessons as you find small ways

to express concern for others even when you are most weak. A

great, life-threatening weakness can prove amazingly freeing.

Don’t Waste Your Cancer 213

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 213

Nothing is left for you to do except to be loved by God and others,

and to love God and others.

8. You will waste your cancer if you grieve as those who have no hope.

John Piper:

Paul used this phrase in relation to those whose loved ones had

died: “We do not want you to be uninformed, brothers, about

those who are asleep, that you may not grieve as others do who

have no hope” (1 Thess. 4:13). There is a grief at death. Even

for the believer who dies, there is temporary loss—loss of body,

and loss of loved ones here, and loss of earthly ministry. But the

grief is different—it is permeated with hope. “We would rather

be away from the body and at home with the Lord” (2 Cor.

5:8). Don’t waste your cancer grieving as those who don’t have

this hope.

David Powlison:

Show the world this different way of grieving. Paul said that he

would have had “grief upon grief” if his friend Epaphroditus

had died (Phil. 2:27). He had been grieving, feeling the painful

weight of his friend’s illness. He would have doubly grieved if

his friend had died. But this loving, honest, God-oriented grief

coexisted with “rejoice always” and “the peace of God that

passes understanding” and “showing a genuine concern for

your welfare” (Phil. 4:4, 7; 2:20). How on earth can heartache

coexist with love, joy, peace, and an indestructible sense of life

purpose? In the inner logic of faith, this makes perfect sense. In

fact, because you have hope, you may feel the sufferings of this

life more keenly: grief upon grief. In contrast, the grieving that

has no hope often chooses denial or escape or busyness because

it can’t face reality without becoming distraught. In Christ, you

know what’s at stake, and so you keenly feel the wrong of this

fallen world. You don’t take pain and death for granted. You

love what is good, and hate what is evil. After all, you follow

in the image of “a man of sorrows, acquainted with grief” (Isa.

214 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 214

53:3). But this Jesus chose his cross willingly “for the joy set

before him” (Heb. 12:2). He lived and died in hopes that all

come true. His pain was not muted by denial or medication, nor

was it tainted with despair, fear, or thrashing about for any

straw of hope that might change his circumstances. Jesus’ final

promises overflow with the gladness of solid hope amid sorrows:

“My joy will be in you, and your joy will be made full”;

“Your grief will be turned to joy”; “No one will take your joy

away from you”; “Ask, and you will receive, so that your joy

will be made full”; “These things I speak in the world, so that

they may have my joy made full in themselves” (selection from

John 15–17).

9. You will waste your cancer if you treat sin as casually as before.

John Piper:

Are your besetting sins as attractive as they were before you had

cancer? If so, you are wasting your cancer. Cancer is designed

to destroy the appetite for sin. Pride, greed, lust, hatred, unforgiveness,

impatience, laziness, procrastination—all these are the

adversaries that cancer is meant to attack. Don’t just think of

battling against cancer. Also think of battling with cancer. All

these things are worse enemies than cancer. Don’t waste the

power of cancer to crush these foes. Let the presence of eternity

make the sins of time look as futile as they really are. “What

does it profit a man if he gains the whole world and loses or forfeits

himself?” (Luke 9:25).

David Powlison:

Suffering really is meant to wean you from sin and strengthen

your faith. If you are God-less, then suffering magnifies sin.

Will you become increasingly bitter, despairing, addictive, fearful,

frenzied, avoidant, sentimental, or godless in how you go

about life? Will you pretend it’s business as usual? Will you

come to terms with death on your terms only? But if you are

God’s, then suffering in Christ’s hands will change you, always

Don’t Waste Your Cancer 215

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 215

slowly, sometimes quickly. You will come to terms with life

and death on his terms. He will gentle you, purify you, cleanse

you of vanities. He will make you need him and love him. He

will rearrange your priorities, so that first things come first

more often. He will walk with you. Of course you’ll fail at

times, perhaps seized by irritability or brooding, escapism or

fears. But he will always pick you up when you stumble. Your

inner enemy—a moral cancer ten thousand times more deadly

than your physical cancer—will be dying as you continue

seeking and finding your Savior: “For your name’s sake, O

LORD, pardon my iniquity, for it is very great. Who is the man

who fears the LORD? He will instruct him in the way he should

choose” (Ps. 25:11-12).

10. You will waste your cancer if you fail to use it as a means of

witness to the truth and glory of Christ.

John Piper:

Christians are never anywhere by divine accident. There are

reasons for why we wind up where we do. Consider what

Jesus said about painful, unplanned circumstances: “They

will lay their hands on you and persecute you, delivering

you up to the synagogues and prisons, and you will be

brought before kings and governors for my name’s sake.

This will be your opportunity to bear witness” (Luke

21:12-13). So it is with cancer. This will be an opportunity

to bear witness. Christ is infinitely worthy. Here is a golden

opportunity to show that he is worth more than life. Don’t

waste it.

David Powlison:

Jesus is your life. He is the man before whom every knee will

bow. He has defeated death once for all. He will finish what he

has begun. Let your light so shine as you live in him, by him,

through him, for him. One of the church’s ancient hymns puts

it this way:

216 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 216

Christ be with me, Christ within me,

Christ behind me, Christ before me,

Christ beside me, Christ to win me,

Christ to comfort and restore me.

Christ beneath me, Christ above me,

Christ in quiet, Christ in danger,

Christ in hearts of all that love me,

Christ in mouth of friend and stranger.1

In your cancer, you will need your brothers and sisters to witness

to the truth and glory of Christ, to walk with you, to live

out their faith beside you, to love you. And you can do the same

with them and with all others, becoming the heart that loves

with the love of Christ, the mouth filled with hope to both

friends and strangers.

Remember you are not left alone. You will have the help you

need. “My God will supply every need of yours according to

his riches in glory in Christ Jesus” (Phil. 4:19).

Don’t Waste Your Cancer 217

1 Cecil F. Alexander, “I Bind unto Myself Today” (1889).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 217

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 218

An Interview with

John Piper

John Piper and Justin Taylor

October 7, 2005

The following interview is drawn from the transcript of an interview of

John Piper by Justin Taylor, conducted on October 7, 2005.1 In order to

reflect the actual conversation, we have kept our edits to a minimum.

All of the questions were unrehearsed and unbeknownst to John ahead

of time, except for the question marked with an asterisk, which was

added later for the purposes of this book.

Justin Taylor:

Pastor John, you’ve become known as a champion of and a celebrator

of God’s control of all things. But I wonder if you

always thought that way. Is it something you grew up thinking?

Maybe you could tell us a little bit of your theological journey

to get to this place—if you didn’t start your journey believing

in God’s absolute sovereignty.

John Piper:

No, I didn’t start believing that way. The paradox is that my

dad, Dr. Bill Piper—an evangelist all my life and still doing a little

bit of evangelizing in the Shepherd Care Center where he

lives with memory loss in Greenville, South Carolina—lived the

sovereignty of God. I can remember his prayers always aimed

at the glory of God, depending on the sovereignty of God. And

1 Audio of this interview can be obtained from http://www.desiringGod.org.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 219

he would use those words, and I remember them as a child. The

other side of the paradox is that he would never, ever call himself

a Calvinist, and to this day he thinks that’s a very bad word

to use.

The sticking point for my dad is the fact that in the

Reformed tradition and understanding of Scripture the act of

regeneration by the Holy Spirit precedes and enables faith,

which I believe with all my heart is what the Bible teaches. But

my dad doesn’t. And we still get along well because I think he’s

totally inconsistent! He thinks it wrecks evangelism. So I grew

up not knowing this was a tension, and, therefore, hearing and

absorbing a lifestyle of radical dependence upon the sovereignty

of God, and hearing, without knowing it, an articulation of theology

not in sync with the life. (That’s my assessment of what

was happening.)

So when I went to college and began to hear people give a

framework to this, I revolted against the sovereignty of God.

That’s not where I was theoretically in my head—though emotionally

I think that’s the way I would have responded to a

tragedy even then. So from 1964 till about halfway through the

1968–69 school year at Fuller Seminary, I would have argued

with anybody who believed what I believe today. I would have

said, “No way. That cannot be the case with the Bible, and it

cannot be the case philosophically.”

When I arrived at Fuller Seminary, I took a class on systematic

theology with James Morgan, who died of stomach

cancer while I was there, and another with Dan Fuller on

hermeneutics. And coming from both sides—theology and exegesis—

I was feeling myself absolutely cornered by all the evidences

of God’s sovereignty in the Bible. And I can remember

. . . maybe two little anecdotes.

I can remember standing outside the classroom one day,

and I got in front of James Morgan. He was a very big man until

he got cancer. He was just huge and a really great teacher, about

thirty-six years old. And I can remember he had a big black

armband, and he’d march in protest to the Vietnam war (this

was 1968–69). He said, “I love Jesus, John Piper.” He was

220 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 220

teaching me all this stuff about the sovereignty of God. And I

got in his face one day. I said, “Watch this, Morgan.” And I

dropped a pencil right in front of his face, and declared: “I

dropped it!” That was my defense of free will.

The other anecdote occurred at the end of Dan Fuller’s class

after he had patiently pointed to the Bible and the Holy Spirit.

I can remember going home after class. (This was before I was

married. Noël and I were married in December 1968, and I

took Dan Fuller’s class that fall.) I would put my face in my

hands in my room, and I would just cry because my world was

coming apart. I just couldn’t figure anything out. So I’m really

patient and tender with people who struggle with this—I hope

I am anyway. I give them a lot of space to move gradually to

where God is taking them.

But at the end of James Morgan’s theology class, I wrote in

a blue book (this was back when we used blue books for final

exams): “Romans 9 is like a tiger going around devouring freewillers

like me.” And it did. Romans 9 just held me until 1982

when I wrote The Justification of God2; I had to come to terms

for myself and for my students when I was teaching at Bethel

College. What does Romans 9 really mean? I had heard all the

efforts to escape what seemed to be its plain meaning, and they

never commended themselves. Even in scholarly ways they never

commended themselves. So I would date my transition from a

kind of unsophisticated believer—in terms of my autonomy and

my self-determination—to a biblical vision of God’s sovereignty

over my life in his grace in the fall of ’68 and on into ’69.

Justin Taylor:

One more personal question before we get to some more theological

questions. You and I were chatting on the phone earlier,

and you mentioned that today is a very special day in your life.

It’s your mother’s birthday today [October 7]. And if my math

is right, she would have been eighty-seven?

An Interview with John Piper 221

2 John Piper, The Justification of God: An Exegetical and Theological Study of Romans 9:1-23, 2nd

edition (Grand Rapids, Mich.: Baker, 1993).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 221

John Piper:

That’s right.

Justin Taylor:

I wonder if you could tell us the significance of your mother and

her birthday for this topic of suffering and the sovereignty of

God.

John Piper:

The question is relevant because my mother was killed thirtyone

years ago, when I was twenty-eight years old, in a bus accident

in Israel. I chose not to build it into the message of this

book—because I feel like I beat the drum too much sometimes.

But it shows you how little I’ve suffered really. I’ve really not

suffered very much, because this is the biggest loss I’ve ever had.

I was twenty-eight years old and I lost my mother, and it was

huge. To this day, if I choose, I can cry. I can choose to cry. I just

think about a certain thing and I can cry. And I cried every day

for six months when my mother died.

But here’s the relevance for this context. I was twenty-eight

years old. I was six years into my confidence in the total

sovereignty of God. And as that phone call happened—many

of you have gotten these phone calls too—it’s a brother-in-law

this time. And he said, “Johnny, I’ve got bad news. Are you

ready?” “Yes.” “Your mother was just killed in a bus wreck in

Israel, and your dad may not make it.” And I said, “Do you

know any more?” He gave me what details he had. And as I

hung up, my little two-year-old Karsten is pulling on my pant

leg. “Daddy, sad? Daddy, sad?”

And I say to my wife, “Mother’s dead, and Daddy may not

make it. Just let me be alone for a while.” I walked back to the

bedroom and kneeled down by the bed and cried for two hours.

I just heaved for two hours. And never once did I have any emotional

anger at God. Never once did it occur to me I should

somehow get upset about God. I simply thought, “If God cannot

control the flight of a four-by-four flying through the front

222 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 222

of a bus after a van hits it, I can’t worship him.” How can you

worship a God who just fumbles the ball? He can’t control a

piece of lumber? That’s not a God I’m going to worship. It is

far easier to me to worship a God who is totally in control and

offers me the mysterious hope this is going to be good for you,

for her, for your dad, for the cause of evangelism. And I could

tell you stories if we had time. I could tell you stories from my

father of what that did for his ministry. He remarried a year

later. I did the wedding. Now he’s lost his second wife after

twenty-five years. But what God did in his ministry . . .

I can remember riding with my daddy in the ambulance,

with my mother in the hearse behind us. We were coming from

Atlanta, Georgia to Greenville, South Carolina, and Daddy was

crying on and off and saying, “Why was I spared? God must

have something for me. God must have something for me.”

And I just sat and listened, and, oh, did God have something

for him!

So I can see little teeny glimpses of what God was up to. I

still would love to have my mother know my grandchildren.

Believe me. I would love to have this woman influencing my

children, her great-grandchildren—but that was not to be. I

submit under that sovereign hand, and I believe in a God who

was in total control and did what was best for her, best for me,

best for my dad, even best for my sister, who, when looking into

my mother’s coffin upon its arrival from Israel ten days later,

fainted onto the floor because the embalming situation wasn’t

so good.

Justin Taylor:

I think when a lot of us think about suffering—if we’re not

thinking about our personal lives—we’re thinking about the

persecuted church around the world. I recently read an article

that quoted an unnamed underground Chinese church leader.

And here’s what he said, and I’d like to get your reaction to it.

This was his word to us Americans: “Stop praying for persecution

in China to end, for it is through persecution that the

An Interview with John Piper 223

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 223

church has grown. We, in fact, are praying that the American

church might taste the same persecution so revival would come

to the American church like we have seen in China.”3 So when

I read that quote, two questions emerged: (1) Should we start

praying for persecution here? (2) And should we stop praying

for persecution to end over there?

John Piper:

When I think of Hebrews 13:3—“Remember those who are in

prison, as though you were in prison with them . . . since you

also are in the body”—it seems like what the author is trying

to say there is that you can imagine what it’s like to have your

hands tied down or to be tortured or beaten. And the Golden

Rule would be do unto others as you would have them do unto

you. Therefore, certainly go visit them, don’t leave them without

help, and imagine what you would want. And so I can’t

help but think that a good heart would long for anyone who is

being hurt not to be hurt anymore. In fact, I think our churches

should labor to relieve suffering in the world, especially eternal

suffering.

It feels a little bit like presumption to me to dictate to God

in my prayer the strategy of purification for the church, unless

I am praying for a particular command in the Bible. God no

doubt uses persecution to purify the church, and he may do that

for us here. Here’s the way I do it for myself—just for me, not

the church: When I get on my knees and think about my struggles

with pride or fear or greed or complacency or lack of love,

what I say to God is, “Lord” (this is a really dangerous prayer,

I think), “whatever it takes. Whatever it takes to break me of

pride, of the fear of man, of greed, of cancer . . . if it takes loss

of family, ministry—do it. I want to be holy. I want to be conformed

to the image of Jesus Christ. Do whatever it takes.”

That feels biblical to me, whereas to tell him, “today what I

224 Appendices

3 Dan Wooding, “Chinese Christians Are Praying That Persecution Comes to the American Church,”

http://across.co.nz/PrayingforPersecution05.html (accessed March 9, 2006).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 224

need is a car wreck” or “today what I need is more pain”—that

seems presumptuous.

Nobody ever says, “I made my greatest advances in holiness

on the happiest days of my life.” Nobody says that.

Everybody says, “I made my greatest advances in holiness on

the hardest days of my life.” Everybody talks that way. But once

you’ve talked that way long enough and you want to be holy

badly enough, then I can see why people would gravitate

towards: “Give me some bad days. Give me more bad days.”

But I don’t find it in the Bible, and I do find empathy in the

Bible, and the Golden Rule in the Bible, and the danger of presumption

in the Bible. And so I’m inclined not to encourage us

to pray that way.

So when I think about China, I want to pray, “Cause the

Word of God to run and triumph by whatever means you

choose. Make the church grow. Same thing here. Whatever you

have to do to purify the church, to make the church less oriented

on things that are light and frivolous and fun, and more

oriented on things that are weighty and glorious and beautiful

and powerful, do whatever you have to do to raise up a powerful

evangelical church.” That feels more “let God be God”

than the other.

Justin Taylor:

It seems like we could endure a lot of suffering if we just have

the presence of God. But there’s a form of suffering, as you

know, that entails the seeming absence of God. And I think

that’s oftentimes the most painful—whether it’s a health issue,

or a child having cancer, or being stuck in a habitual sin and

begging God with tears for repentance and crying day after day

after day. What do you do when it seems like God is not near,

and no matter what you do, he does not seem to answer? C. S.

Lewis, in A Grief Observed, described it like this:

A door slammed in your face, and a sound of bolting and

double bolting on the inside. After that, silence. You may

An Interview with John Piper 225

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 225

as well turn away. The longer you wait, the more

emphatic the silence will become. There are no lights in

the windows. It might be an empty house. Was it ever

inhabited? It seemed so once. . . .4

How do you counsel people in that sort of situation where it

seems so dark and silent?

John Piper

That’s a good way to ask the question, I think, because counsel

is what’s needed there among other things. And when you

ask, “How do you counsel them?” I take that to mean “What

demeanor should you have and what words should you

speak?”

And I think the first demeanor you should have is to come

alongside and to be honest about your own struggles and get

your armaround them and be a partner and a helper. “I’m with

you.” “I’m alongside you.” “I’m not above pushing you or

squashing.” “I’m around.” That would be a how-to-counsel

first, so that they have a sense that they’re not alone in that kind

of struggle.

Secondly, I would remind them of psalmists who seem to

speak out of that kind of How long, O Lord? How long? I have

retreated to Psalm 40 for myself and for people that I’ve counseled

for years.

I waited patiently for the LORD; he inclined to me and

heard my cry. He drew me up from the pit of destruction,

out of the miry bog, and set my feet upon a rock, making

my steps secure. He put a new song in my mouth, a song

of praise to our God. Many will see and fear, and put their

trust in the LORD. (vv. 1-3)

But it starts with “I waited,” and thankfully it doesn’t say a

week, a month, a year. It’s just open: “I waited patiently for the

226 Appendices

4 C. S. Lewis, A Grief Observed (New York: Bantam, 1961), 4-5.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 226

LORD.” So I would draw the person’s attention to the fact that

people that we know who are saints of God have walked

through dark nights of the soul where they waited for God,

meaning they must feel distant here. But instead of throwing in

the towel on God, they’re waiting. They’re waiting.

Thirdly, depending on whether they’re emotionally able to

take this, I would begin to interpret for them their situation so

that they can draw some conclusions other than the absence of

God. That’s their interpretation of what’s going on. It’s probably

wrong. And therefore they are not in an emotional framework,

or maybe a theological framework, to get it right.

They’re seeing a few circumstances—this went bad; this went

bad; this went bad; I tried this and it didn’t work—and now the

conclusion must be that God is gone. That’s not necessarily the

only conclusion. So you analyze their situation, and then you

show them from the Scripture that God wasn’t gone in numerous

times where people thought he was gone or it looked like

he was gone.

One of the most helpful sequences in the Bible for me—and

you all know this story and have used it the same way I have

because you’ve walked through things—is Joseph in the Old

Testament. I love to graph. One time I graphed the life of Joseph

on paper. He’s a star, and he’s having dreams that he’s going to

be the king and be bowed down to someday. And he’s above

his brothers and he’s not handling that very well, making enemies

among his brothers.

So one day they throw him into a pit. And that’s the first

little downward spin on the graph. And after a while Reuben

comes and pulls him up, and Joseph thinks, “Oh good, it’s

going to go better.” The graph line of his life comes up a little

bit, and then they sell him into slavery and there the graph goes

down again. And in slavery he gets a job at Potiphar’s house

and that seems to go well; his boss has confidence, so there’s a

little upward jog in the graph. And then this woman tries to

seduce him and he runs away from her, did what was right, and

he goes into prison for it. There he goes down again. And a little

while later he gets the confidence of the jailer and that seems

An Interview with John Piper 227

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 227

hopeful; the graph goes up a bit. But these two people are there

to say, “Tell us our dreams.” And Joseph tells them their dreams

and then he says, “Remember me when you come back to

Pharaoh, Mr. Cupbearer.” But the cupbearer forgets Joseph for

two more years. And that’s the bottom of the graph. That’s thirteen

years.

And you know what happens next. He gets made the vicepresident

of Egypt and it all turns out for good: “You meant it

for evil but God meant it for good” (Gen. 50:20). And I ask

people, where are you on your thirteen-year fall? You have been

fighting this for thirteen years. Have you been abandoned for

thirteen years? And they might have been, but not if they are

Christians. Most people can locate themselves one year, two

years, three years, four years, five years down this graph. I say,

look, even though God had a plan for Joseph in his apparent

abandonment, it looked like everything was going wrong.

When Joseph tried to do his very best, it went wrong. But God

was never against him. Never. As a Christian you’re interpreting

your situation wrongly if you think that. If you cast yourself

on the Lord, if you trust him, if you love him, he’s going to

work everything together for your good, if it takes thirteen

years or twenty-seven years. There are so many stories about

how he has done this. And then you tell stories from your own

life or people you know, or church history, and you try to help

people interpret their life differently.

And the last thing I would say is—and this is true in virtually

every counseling situation—ultimately we want to orient

people on the cross. We want to get them to Calvary because

in the end you can always look at Jesus hanging on the cross

and ask, is that infinite worth not sufficient to cover my sin? Is

it not sufficient to cover my problem? Is it not sufficient to give

evidence that he will help me? Just fall there.

Justin, I know what you would ask me if you were a real

skeptic and questioner. You would ask, “What if they say, ‘I

don’t think I’m included’?”which you should ask.

228 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 228

Justin Taylor:

What if they don’t think they’re included?

John Piper:

If you’re a Calvinist you might ask, am I elect? If you’re not a

Calvinist you just might ask, is my faith authentic? It’s the same

kind of problem experienced at the same level. And the bottomline

answer to that is not a simple little “here it says, ‘If you

believe, you have the Holy Spirit.’” Have you believed? Yes.

Where’s the Holy Spirit? He’s in my heart. That does not work.

That simply does not work. That is so superficial, because the

issue is, am I really believing? Because the Bible says there are

going to be some people in the last day who are stunned when

he says, “I never knew you; depart from me” (Matt. 7:23).

They’re going to think they were believing all the time, but they

were not believing. So how do I know if I am believing? That’s

the kind of terror that will keep you awake at night and make

life really hard. The bottom-line answer is: Look to Christ.

Look to Christ. Look to Christ. Only in looking to Christ and

the cross does Romans 8:16 powerfully happen. “The Spirit

bears witness with our spirit that we are the children of God.”

I can’t give anybody assurance that they’re truly saved. I

can’t give anybody assurance that they’re elect. But God can.

And it’s a miracle. You pray for it and you wait for it, and you

don’t stand in front of the mirror looking endlessly into your

soul with introspection. That comes periodically, but mainly

you stand in front of the cross and you keep looking and looking

and looking. And in looking you are saved.

Justin Taylor:

Just to add my own anecdote: Last year a farmer gave me an

analogy. He told me that when a farmer is plowing his field and

wants to make a straight line, he focuses his eyes upon a spot

in the distance. The result is that the line is straight. But if he

looks down and tries to see where he’s going, he’ll go off course.

To put the cross at the center of our attention is exactly right.

An Interview with John Piper 229

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 229

For this next question, I’ll tell you what the question is first

and then I’ll set it up. The question is: where is God? Everybody

asks, where is God? Tsunamis come, 9/11 comes, Hurricane

Katrina, etc. Personally—and perhaps it’s because those are

more abstract—I struggle less with the “where is God” question

in some big natural catastrophe than I do with the issues

like abuse, especially sexual abuse of children. And so I want

to ask the “where is God” question, but I want to frame it by

reading a quote from The Brothers Karamazov, which one person

at least has said contains the greatest argument against

God’s existence and the problem of evil. So if you’ll allow me

here, I just want to read this quote and then ask you: where is

God in this situation? This is from chapter 4, where Ivan is talking

to Alyosha about Russian children. He says:

There was a little girl of five who was hated by her

mother and father. . . .

This poor child of five was subjected to every possible

torture by those cultivated parents. They beat her,

thrashed her, kicked her for no reason till her body was

one bruise. Then, they went to greater refinements of cruelty—

shut her up all night in the cold and frost in a privy

[outhouse], and because she didn’t ask to be taken up at

night (as though a child of five sleeping its angelic, sound

sleep could be trained to wake and ask), they smeared her

face and filled her mouth with excrement, and it was her

mother, her mother did this. And that mother could sleep,

hearing the poor child’s groans!

Can you understand why a little creature, who can’t

even understand what’s done to her, should beat her little

aching heart with her tiny fist in the dark in the cold and

weep her meek, unresentful tears to dear, kind God to

protect her? Do you understand that, friend and brother,

you pious and humble novice? Do you understand why

this infamy must be and is permitted? Without it, I am

told, man could not have existed on earth, for he could

not have known good and evil. Why should he know that

230 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 230

diabolic good and evil when it costs so much? Why the

whole world of knowledge is not worth that child’s prayer

to dear, kind God!5

So where is God in a situation of that kind of terrible torture of

children and rape of children? Can one maintain idea that God

is absolutely sovereign over all things with that kind of evil?

John Piper:

Yes. The question where is metaphorical and hardly has an

answer. “On the throne of the universe preparing a place for the

little girl in heaven that will recompense her ten-thousand-fold

for everything she is experiencing.” “Preparing hell for her parents

so that justice will be done perfectly.” And those who look

upon both the heaven recompense and the hell recompense will

bow in sovereign wonder at the justice of God. Those are possible

answers to where he is.

But I think the nub of the issue is whether anything sufficiently

good could come from a world in which that is

ordained. I don’t know whether this man is speaking for

Dostoevsky or not. I don’t remember it well enough. Does the

speaker have a vision of God as the supreme value of the universe?

It seems that when he says, “the whole world of knowledge

is not worth that,” he does not put the knowledge of God

where the Bible puts the knowledge of God. The knowledge of

God and his glory is the highest experience of man. And my

own conviction—whether this will be a relief or whether it

would be presumptuous to you—my own conviction is that

because of the argument of Romans 1:19-22 and John 9 and a

few others, all children who are born and die the way that little

girl did, or in less horrible ways, are elect and will go to

heaven.

You don’t have to go to Dostoevsky. All you need to do is

read about the dashing of the infants in the Old Testament

ordained by God explicitly. I can draw some pictures of what

An Interview with John Piper 231

5 Fyodor Dostoevsky, The Brothers Karamazo, chapter 4.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 231

that looks like for some of you, and it would be worse than

that. Therefore, this is not an external problem. This is a biblical

problem. We have our God ordaining the dashing of infants

against the stone. And the solution to that in my mind, to the

degree that there is one for finite minds, is that those infants will

be repaid ten-thousand-fold for the pain that they endured. The

perpetrators will be punished appropriately. And this is likely

the one that most of us don’t think through enough; namely, the

reason that such horrors exist in the physical realm and the

moral realm is to display the outrage of sin. The outrage of sin

against the holy God.

Let me see if I can help you feel what I’m saying here.

When Adam and Eve fell by rebelling against God, God subjected

the entire universe to corruption. You might say that’s

an overreaction. Well, if you bring your brain to the Bible and

shape the Bible by your brain, that’s what you’re going to say.

But if you let the Bible describe what’s happening and shape

your brain by the Bible, the conclusion you should draw is that

sin is unfathomably outrageous. To turn your back on the living

Creator God and prefer an apple to him is the ultimate outrage.

It is infinitely outrageous. It deserves infinite punishment.

And what God does in bringing the whole universe into subjection

to futility—Romans 8:20—is to create a horrid parable

of the outrage of moral evil. So that everywhere I look

when I see outrageous physical evil—suffering—I want my

response to be, “Oh how infinitely outrageous and repugnant

is sin against the holy God.” So I understand all the physical

horrors of the world as symbolic of the horrors of the moral

reality of sin against God.

Let me go a little step further. When Jesus died on the cross,

you can come at that in one of two ways. You can say that not

only was there Adam and Eve’s sin, which was so evil it brought

down the entire universe, but there have been in every one of

us ten thousand of those sins. And multiply that by the number

of people who have lived on the earth, or just take the church

and multiply our sins—each one of which is no less grievous

than choosing an apple over God—and therefore every sin that

232 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 232

is committed should bring down the whole universe on our

heads with physical horrors like this. And Jesus Christ hung on

the cross and displayed the infinite value of God’s worthiness

to be treasured, not traded away. And now, stand and wonder

at the value of the Son of God, that his suffering could match

all of those universe-crushing sins for which he died. Or you

could come at it from the side of Christ and see how gloriously

supreme he is and how infinitely valuable he is, and then draw

the conclusion about how terrible sin is.

What I’m saying in addition to those preliminary things is

that every time we see something horrific, some horrible accident,

our thoughts should be about the outrage of sin, not the

injustice of God. These stories I’ve heard about people backing

over their own children with their car. What would that mean?

How would that feel—that bump, and you get out, and everything

in you would scream. I knelt beside a man and put my

arm around him about three weeks ago whose little girl was in

the middle of Eleventh Avenue with a blue tarp over her. She

had just walked across the road behind her dad. Hit. Got killed

instantly right down the street from our house. And he just sat

there staring at her. “I didn’t mean to. I didn’t mean to,” he said.

So we’ve all tasted this. And when we see the horrific things that

happen in the world, what should we feel?

I think instead of calling God into question, we should see

them as evidences in our lives of the outrage of our sin and the

horrific evil and repugnance of sin to a holy God. And God is

displaying to us the outrage of our sin in the only way that we

can see it, because we don’t get upset about our sinning. We

only get upset about the hurt. How many of you lose sleep—

well, some of you are good saints and you do—over your own

fallenness? Most of us get bent out of shape about things that

hurt our bodies, but it’s our sins that are the ultimate outrage.

So I think the kind of repugnance Dostoevsky is talking about

is a display of how horrifically terrible our own sin is. And then

Christ arrives, bears all that outrage, and by his own suffering

undoes suffering. I want to summon people to Christ as the final

solution to that problem.

An Interview with John Piper 233

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 233

Justin Taylor:

You just ended there talking about sin and our hearts as

Christians. And probably the most famous sentence you have

written is “God is most glorified in us when we are most satisfied

in him.” So God gets the glory through our happiness, our

satisfaction in him. If that’s the case—if God is so passionate

about his glory and everything he does is about getting glory for

his own name—then why do Christians sin so much? It would

seem from a human point of view that at this point in my life,

if I was this much holy God would be getting this much glory.

I’m only this holy or this holy. So what’s the correlation there?

And what’s the reason, do you think?

John Piper:

You are so right. My sin is my greatest burden. Why? Why?

Why is the process of sanctification so slow? And the first

answer is because I am so evil. But the comeback is: but God,

your God, is sovereign. He can do whatever he wants. And if

he’s most glorified in us when we’re most satisfied in him and

he cares about his glory infinitely, why doesn’t he advance your

satisfaction in him, cut the roots of more sins, and therefore get

more glory for himself more quickly? And that is an absolutely

crucial question. And I have dealt with more people—I’m not

sure if this is true but close—who are ready to give up their

Christian faith precisely because of the slowness of their sanctification,

rather than because of physical harm that’s been

brought to them or hurt that’s come into their life. They’re just

tired. “I just can’t fight it anymore. I can’t succeed. I’m not making

any progress. It just can’t be real.” So that is a horribly real

and dangerous situation to be in.

Free will is a zero answer here, because at the last day in

the twinkling of an eye at the last trumpet when Christ

descends, he will with the snap of his finger make us holy. You

will never sin again after the Second Coming, unless you’re in

hell. You will never sin again after your death, if you’re a

believer. So God at a point in time can sanctify you instanta-

234 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 234

neously—the spirits of just men made whole (Heb. 12:23).

Therefore, if he wanted to, he could do it now without ruining

this so-called free will. If he can do it at the end of your life so

that you’re perfect for eternity, he can do it now. And he doesn’t

do it.

This means I have more to learn. I try not to come to this

Book, the Bible, now dictating, “That can’t be. That’s a stupid

way to run the world.” I try to go under this Book, and my

mind just gets blown every day of my life almost. This is a

mind-blowing book. You try to get your mind not around but

just into this Book. Remember, Chesterton said something like:

mad men try to get heaven into their head, and poets try to get

their head into the heavens. I try to get my head into the heaven

of this Book instead of trying to dictate to this Book how God

should sanctify us.

Therefore, I draw this conclusion: “God, if you love your

glory infinitely and you are more glorified in me when I am

more satisfied in you, and my sin is being manifest by the slowness

of my being satisfied in you totally, then it must be that the

struggle that I’m having with my own sin will somehow in some

way cause me to be more satisfied in you.” Someday. And one

way to conceive of it is this: I’ll look back on my sin when I’m

in heaven and say, “How could such grace have carried on with

me?” and I’ll love his grace more than I ever would have, had

I made progress more quickly.

Now, that’s a terribly dangerous thing to say because

you’re all going to go out and sin to beat the band now. You’re

all going to give up on your quest for holiness. You’re all going

to give up on trying to be satisfied in God. Don’t do that. In

other words, that would be again making your brain supreme

and trying to tell this Book what to do. You don’t bring your

brain and say, Okay, I drew that logical inference and now I

should live a life of sin that grace may abound. Let us sin that

our satisfaction in you would abound in your grace. Paul said

of people who think that way, “their condemnation is just”

(Rom. 3:8). Therefore, do what the Bible says. Be perfect as

An Interview with John Piper 235

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 235

your heavenly Father is perfect. And every day that you fail, be

on your face giving thanks to the cross of Christ.

Justin Taylor:

So if God is sovereign over everything—from the rising and

falling of nations, on the one hand, to the particles of dust in a

sunbeam, on the other—then what is the motivation for us to

effect change? In other words, if God is sovereign—if his purposes

will be accomplished with or without us—then is there

any necessity to our involvement?6

John Piper:

This is a crucial question for me because I have heard Christians

say recently that believing in the sovereignty of God hinders

Christians from working hard to eradicate diseases like malaria

and tuberculosis and cancer and AIDS. They think the logic

goes like this: If God sovereignly wills all things, including

malaria, then we would be striving against God to invest millions

of dollars to find a way to wipe it out.

That is not the logic the Bible teaches. And it is not what

Calvinists have historically believed. In fact, lovers of God’s

sovereignty have been among the most aggressive scientists who

have helped subdue creation and bring it under the dominion

of man for his good—just like Psalm 8:6 says: “You have given

him [man] dominion over the works of your hands; you have

put all things under his feet.”

The logic of the Bible says: Act according to God’s “will of

command,” not according to his “will of decree.” God’s “will

of decree” is whatever comes to pass. “If the Lord wills, we will

live and do this or that” (James 4:15). God’s “will of decree”

ordained that his Son be betrayed, ridiculed, mocked, beaten,

forsaken, pierced, and killed. But the Bible teaches us plainly

that we should not betray, ridicule, mock, beat, forsake, pierce,

or kill innocent people. That is God’s “will of command.” We

236 Appendices

6 See introductory paragraph.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 236

do not look at the death of Jesus, clearly willed by God, and

conclude that killing Jesus is good and that we should join the

mockers. No.

In the same way, we do not look at the devastation of

malaria or AIDS and conclude that we should join the ranks of

the indifferent. No. “Love your neighbor” (Matt. 22:39) is

God’s will of command. “Do unto others as you would have

them do unto you” (Matt. 7:12) is God’s will of command. “If

your enemy is hungry, feed him” (Rom. 12:20) is God’s will of

command. The disasters that God ordains are not aimed at paralyzing

his people with indifference, but mobilizing them with

compassion.

When Paul taught that the creation was subjected to futility

(Rom. 8:20), he also taught that this subjection was “in hope

that the creation itself will be set free from its bondage to decay

and obtain the freedom of the glory of the children of God” (v.

21). There is no reason that Christians should not embrace this

futility-lifting calling now. God will complete it in the age to

come. But it is a good thing to conquer as much disease and suffering

now in the name of Christ as we can.

In fact, I would wave the banner right now and call some

of you to enter vocations of research that may be the means of

undoing some of the great diseases of the world. This is not fighting

against God. God is as much in charge of the research as he

is of the disease. You can be an instrument in his hand. This may

be the time appointed for the triumph that he wills to bring over

the disease that he ordained. Don’t try to read the mind of God

from his mysterious decrees of calamity. Do what he says. And

what he says is: “Do good to everyone” (Gal. 6:10).

Justin Taylor:

I think this will be the final question: What are you doing in

your own life to prepare for suffering and death? And how do

you counsel all of us here to prepare for suffering and death—

whether we’re in the final chapters of life or young people not

An Interview with John Piper 237

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 237

knowing when the Lord will take us or what he will give us?

How do you prepare for suffering and death?

John Piper:

I have a funny habit that I’ve mentioned before, and I’ve done

it for the last three nights so I know the habit is still there: I can

only sleep on my left side. I have no idea why. I wish it weren’t

the case because it gets achy. But if I try to sleep on my right

side I just lie awake. So I’m always on the left side. So Noël is

behind me, and I face the door. It seems like the manly thing to

do! And as I’m lying there with my head on my pillow, I take

my wrist and I catch my pulse. I can just see the alarm clock

with its big, yellow numbers. And it doesn’t have a second

hand, so I have to count for a whole minute. And as soon as the

six goes to seven—like 10:36 going to 10:37—I start counting:

one, two, three, four. I count just to see what my sleeping pulse

rate is. And when I’m done before I go to sleep I remind myself:

Anyone of those beats [finger snap] stop, and it’s finished.

There’s no reason this heart should keep beating, absolutely

none, except God. If he wanted to, he could say to any one of

those beats, “last beat,” and I’m done. Will I wake up in

heaven or in hell? I ask myself that.

And I walk myself through the gospel and I look at Jesus

and I look at the cross, and I try to get as absolutely personal

as I can. Nothing formal. Nothing mechanical. No forms. No

sermons. Just picturing Jesus if this heart stopped—there I am

face to face, either as Judge or Savior. And I say: Jesus, as much

as it lies within me, you are my God. You are my Savior. You

are my Lord. I renounce all reliance upon myself. I dedicate

myself to you. I trust your blood wholly for my salvation. And

I now commit myself to you for this night. If I should die before

I wake, I pray the Lord my soul to take.

I would commend that as something to wake you up seriously

to your mortality. But strategically the answer to your

question is: “Be killing sin or it will be killing you” (John

Owen). So set your sights to destroy any known sin in your life,

238 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 238

lest you fall. “Let him who thinks that he stand take heed lest

he fall” (1 Cor. 10:12).

Secondly, be in the Word of God every day seeking to see

Christ as your treasure. I’m very intentional about the way I use

this Book. I’m reading through the Bible with my typical Bible

reading plan that most people have at the church.7 But I’m on

the lookout for God and for Christ, not just moral precepts; I’m

on the lookout for God. Show me your glory that I might be

transformed from one degree of glory to the next (2 Cor. 3:18).

It is seeing the glories of Christ in the gospel. That’s why I

almost never stop my reading unless I catch a little bit of the

Gospels, just to see Jesus functioning on planet Earth. So I look

at him and I love him. I come away with something almost

every day that is just stunning about Jesus that enables me to

commune with him in an admiring, personal way because I just

saw the way he was in the Bible.

And third, pray that God would preserve you and keep you

in all suffering and in your dying hour. I frankly sometimes

worry about dying. I’ve watched a lot of people die over

twenty-five years in the pastorate. For some it’s been so sweet,

and for others it has been horrific. And some of the greatest

saints experience the hardest dying. And therefore, I don’t

know what I’ll do. And I assure myself, you get the ticket when

you get on the train.

That’s the way Corrie ten Boom described how the grace

to die well arrives—on time, not before. She wondered, will I

be able to endure the torture? And her dad said, “When you

take the train do I give you the ticket three weeks ahead or do

I give you the ticket when you get on the train?” And she said,

“When I get on the train.” “Well, God has a grace for you for

your torture. He’ll give it to you when the torture comes.”

And I think that’s very biblical because there’s a correlation

of Matthew 6:34 and Lamentations 3:23. “Sufficient to the day

is the evil thereof.” “His mercies are new every morning.” So

An Interview with John Piper 239

7 “The Discipleship Journal Reading Plan,” available at http://www.navpress.com/Magazines/DJ/

OriginalBibleReadingPlan.asp?opt=old (accessed March 12, 2006).

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 239

every day has its appointed trouble, including the day of your

death; and every day has its appointed mercies for those troubles,

no more. If you reach forward and bring tomorrow’s troubles

into today and say, Lord, give me the grace for tomorrow’s

troubles, he’ll say, I will give you the grace for that tomorrow.

But you have to have a mighty deep confidence that God’s going

to come through for you, and that’s what faith is, I believe. And

that’s why we go to the Word.

I could list off a lot more means of grace that God has

appointed. I think fasting and elements of voluntary self-denial

are wise for American wimpy Christians who never endure any

hardship at all and calculate their whole lives to avoid hardship.

I think we ought to build into our lives some artificial hardships

called fasting, self-denial. Take up your cross daily and follow

me; he who denies himself will be my disciple (Luke 9:23). So

that’s just another means of grace.

The list of ways to prepare ourselves to suffer well goes on

and on. Worship corporately with God’s people. Be in a small

group where you are exhorted regularly to stay close to Jesus.

“Take care, brothers, lest there be in any of you an evil, unbelieving

heart, leading you to fall away from the living God. But

exhort one another every day, as long as it is called ‘today,’ that

none of you may be hardened by the deceitfulness of sin” (Heb.

3:12-13). We are all vulnerable to drifting away from the living

Christ if we don’t have people in our lives getting in our face to

tell us the truth about God when we can’t see the truth, especially

the truth that’s uncomfortable to us. So stay in this Book

mainly, because it will give you guidance in all of the preparations

for your death and for your suffering that you need.

Justin Taylor:

Thank you very much for taking this hour. And I wonder if you

would close in a word of prayer.

240 Appendices

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 240

John Piper:

Incline our heart, O God, to your testimonies and not to getting

gain (Ps. 119:36). And then open our eyes over the page

that we may see wonderful things out of your law (Ps. 119:18).

And then unite our heart to fear your name (Ps. 86:11). And

then satisfy us in the morning with your steadfast love that we

may rejoice and be glad in you all our days (Ps. 90:14). And

then send us, O God, so satisfied in Christ that we count everything

as rubbish compared to the surpassing value of knowing

him (Phil. 3:8). And would you sever, O God, the roots of sin

in our lives so that we are sold utterly to righteousness and love.

And so make this people gathered here, I pray, the most radical

risk-taking kinds of Christians in the cause of justice, in the

cause of love, in the cause of missions, in the cause of evangelism

that they can possibly be. I ask this in Jesus’ name. Amen.

An Interview with John Piper 241

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 241

Above All Earthly Pow’rs (David Wells),

17

aim of this book, 17

angels, God’s sovereignty over, 20-21

animals, God’s sovereignty over, 25-26

Bible. See Scripture.

blame, 49 n. 32

Brothers Karamazov, 230-31

BTK killer, 35

Calvinism, 70 n. 56, 229

cancer, “beating,” 211-12; deepen your

relationships through, 213-14;

designed by God, 207-8; don’t waste

it, 207-17; as gift, not curse, 209;

grieve with hope, 214-15; means to

the glory of Christ, 216-17; read more

about God than, 212-13; seek comfort

in God, not odds, 209-10; and

thinking about death, 210-11; treating

sin, 215-16

choice. See freedom of will.

choosing. See freedom of will.

Christ. See Jesus.

church, American, 17

contributors to this book, 9, 11-14, 18, 89

counseling, 226-28

covenant of creation. See covenant of

works.

covenant of works, 123

cross, at the center of our attention, 229;

displaying the glory of God’s grace,

87- 89; inability of open theists to

explain, 53 n. 39; ordained by God, 50-

51; and the ultimate explanation for

suffering, 81-85

death. See suffering.

demons. See angels.

Desiring God National Conference, 11

Devil. See Satan.

diamond, 14

dual explanations, 64-65

ethnocentrism, 127-30

evangelicalism, not very serious anymore,

17

evil, God’s relationship to, 41-47

Finishers Project, 99 n. 9

freedom of the will, choosing and willing,

54-60; dual explanations, 64-65;

free will as zero answer, 234-36; and

God’s will, 66-71; and human responsibility,

47-54, 236-37; in serial killers, 57

n. 41

free-will libertarians, 48

glorification, 73

glory of God and Jesus, cancer as a means

of, 216-17

God (see also will of God), awareness of,

135-36; better served in prison, 105-6;

cancer designed by, 207-8; grace of,

and your suffering, 145-73; great

supreme value, 17; hope in, made visible

in suffering, 109; love of,

proved to the end of your life, 167-69;

meeting joy on his terms,

Subject Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 242

Subject Index 243

197-98; meeting suffering on his

terms, 194-96; power to heal, 207;

ordaining but not doing sin, 85-87;

purpose of, and your

transformation, 162-67; relationship

to evil, 41-47; why he appoints

suffering, 91-109; will never fail you,

169-72

healing, God’s power, 207

Holocaust, 31-35

hope, the best of things, 191-204; cancer

and grieving with, 214-15;

God can raise us out of hopelessness,

193-94; hard to come by, 192-93;

never disappoints, 198-99; for pain,

186-188; passing it on to others,

199-201

How Firm a Foundation, 147-73

human responsibility, 47-54

hurts, done to us by others, 31-77

internalized oppression, 134-35

Jesus (see also cross), pain of, 185-86;

against thousands of demons, 20-21

Joseph’s story, 60-66, 227-28

joy, craves a crowd, 202-4; meeting, on

God’s terms, 197-98

Last Supper, 51-52

love of God, better than life, 108

marginalization, 130-31

Minneapolis Star Tribune, 101 n. 11

Mozambique, 104-5

natural disasters, 17, 23

Night (Elie Wiesel), 31-35

open theism, 36-40; Adam’s sin surprising

God, 67 n. 54; attributing mistakes

to God, 40 n. 10; as free-will

libertarianism, 48; inability to explain

the cross, 53 n. 39; inability to explain

Peter’s denial, 52 n. 38; interpreting

“open” passages, 44 n. 18, 50 n. 35;

neglect of Ephesians 1:11, 44 n. 18;

one more move available, 43 n. 16

pain. See suffering.

persecution, God sovereign over Satan’s

hand in, 21-22

plants, God’s sovereignty over, 25-26

political libertarianism, 48 n. 28

prayer for this book, 14

racism, 127-34

rejoice. See joy.

rereading, 31 n. 1

Satan, God’s sovereignty over, 17-30

satisfaction. See joy.

Scripture, its perspective on God’s relationship

to evil, 41-47

serial killers, 57 n. 41

Shawshank Redemption The, 191-92, 200

sickness, God’s sovereignty over, 24-25

sin, and cancer, 215-16; God ordaining

but not doing, 85-87; God’s

sovereignty over temptations to, 26-

27; our greatest burden, 234

sovereignty of God, cancer designed by,

207-8; dual explanations of, 64-65;

mechanical view, 161 n. 4; one and

only, 29-30; permission, 19-20,

35 n. 7; Piper’s journey, 219-21; planning

death, 117-20; over Satan’s

angels, demons, evil spirits, 20-21;

over Satan’s hand in natural

disasters, 23-24; over Satan’s hand in

persecution, 21-22; over Satan’s

life-taking power, 22; over Satan’s

mind-blinding power, 27-28; over

Satan’s sickness-causing power, 24-

25; over Satan’s spiritual

bondage, 28-29; over Satan’s temptations

to sin, 26-27; over Satan’s use of

animals and plants, 25-26; over

Satan’s world rule, 19-20; and the

suffering of Christ, 81-89

sovereignty of Jesus governing everything,

41-42

spirits, evil and unclean. See angels.

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 243

suffering, avoidance of, 113-14; basis of,

126-27; blistered feet and a chance to

preach, 98-99; boasting in weakness

and calamity, 107; brighter than

gratitude when gladly, 108-9; Christ’s

supremacy manifest in, 106-9;

clinging to God in the midst of, 189;

in death of Piper’s mother, 222-23;

enforces the missionary command to

go, 100-106; ethnic-based, 123-41;

deepens faith and holiness,

91-93; depth of pain in, 180-184;

displaying the glory of God’s grace in

the cross, 87-89; fills up what is

lacking in Christ’s afflictions, 98-100;

five inspiring wives, 96-97; in

getting arrested, 103-4; and God better

served in prison, 105-6; God’s

awareness of, 135-136; God’s megaphone

to the world, 120-21; and

hope in God made visible, 109; and

hope for pain, 186-88; how we

should respond to, 136-39; and joyfully

accepting the plundering of

property, 107-8; makes your cup

increase, 93-95; meeting, on God’s

terms, 194-96; mystery of, 125-26;

pain of Jesus in, 185-86; and the

people of God, 139-41; as the price of

making others bold, 96-98;

problem with pain, 178-79; reality of

pain, 176-77; reasons for, 112-13;

significant, 146-47; two painful chapters

in the life of Steve Saint, 114-21;

ultimate biblical explanation for,

81-82, 89; waiting during weeping,

175-90; where is God in our pain?

188-89; why God appoints, 91-109;

why such pain is in the Bible, 184-85

temptations, God’s sovereignty over, 26-

27; God tempts no one, 41 n. 11

theology, applied, 11; good, essential for

suffering well, 175

tsunamis, 17, 23, 126, 230

Westminster Confession of Faith, 68 n.

55, 71 n. 58

will of God, and our wills, 66-71;

revealed and secret, 43 n. 18, 52 n.

39, 60 n. 45

Word of God. See Scripture.

244 Subject Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 244

Acquavella, Rose, 77

Alexander, Cecil F., 216-17

Alighieri, Dante, 159

Amin, Idi, 19

Aquinas, Thomas, 70, 71

Bitterman, Anna, 97

Bitterman, Brenda, 97

Bitterman, Chet, 97

Bitterman, Esther, 97

Blomberg, Craig, 95

Bloody Mary, 19

Boyd, Gregory, 37-40, 44, 47, 50, 52, 53,

73

Brainerd, David, 96

Bruce, F. F., 42, 59-60

Campos, Martinho, 104-5

Card, Michael, 99-100

Chandra, Michael Ajay, 70

Chapman, Steven Curtis, 120

Chesterton, G.K., 235

Cline, David J.A., 44

Cowper, William, 29-30

Cyrus the Great, 43

Dabney, Bobby, 179

Dabney, Jimmy, 179

Dabney, Robert, 179

Damoff, Luke, 77

deMille, Cecil B., 134

Dostoevsky, Fyodor, 230-31

Dufresne, Andy, 13, 191-92

Dyuwi, 116

Edwards, Jonathan, 94-95

Elliot, Elisabeth, 96, 114-17

Elliot, Jim, 96-97, 114-17

Ellis, Jr., Carl F., 12, 89, 123-41

Ellis, Nikki, 126

Ensor, Megan, 77

Estes, Steve, 97

Fee, Gordon, 42

Fern·ndez, Noel, 197

Fischer, John Martin, 49

Fleming, Pete, 96-97

Frankfurt, Harry G., 48

Fuller, Daniel, 220-21

Gikita, 116

Gomes, Alan, 70

Goodwin, Thomas, 42-43

Graham, Billy, 99

Grudem, Wayne, 41, 44-45, 50,

Helm, Paul, 50

Herther, Andrew, 77

Higgins, John, 77

Hitler, Adolf, 19

Hitt, Russell T., 96

Hodge, Charles, 65

Hussein, Saddam, 19

Huxley, Aldous, 48

Johnson, Thomas Cary, 179

Jones, Camara Phyllis, 131-34

Joseph, (Masai Warrior), 99-100

Kane, Robert, 48-49, 56

Kerr, Fergus, 70

Kimo, 116

Kjoss, Paul, 40

Kulichev, Hristo, 105-6

Person Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 245

Lane, William L., 41

Leftow, Brian,, 50

Lewis, C. S., 121, 225-26

Luther, Martin, 20

Manyi, Nungu Magdalene, 197

Marshall, Barry, 24

Marshall (pseudonym), Frank, 103-4

Martyn, Henry, 96

McCheyne, Robert Murray, 212

McCully, Ed, 96-97, 114-17

McCully, Marylou, 114-17

Mengele, Joseph, 71-72

Mincaye, 116-17, 118-21

Morgan, James, 220-21

Nampa, 116

Nicholson, Martha Snell, 121

Nimongo, 116

O’Brien, Peter T., 42, 56, 57, 60

Owen, John, 238

Packer, J. I., 157

Paton, John G., 92-93

Pinnock, Clark H., 44

Piper, John, 12, 13, 14, 17-30, 40, 81-89,

91-109, 93, 187, 207-17, 219-41, 221

Piper, Karsten, 222

Piper, Noel, 221, 238

Piper, Ruth, 221-23

Piper, William, 219-20, 223

Powlison, David, 13-14, 67, 89, 145-73,

164, 207-17

Quinn, S. Lance, 66

Rader, Dennis, 35, 42, 72

Ravizza, Mark, 49

Saint, Ginny, 111, 118-120

Saint, Jaime, 119

Saint, Nate, 96-97, 116

Saint, Rachel, 116-17

Saint, Stephenie, 118-20

Saint, Steve, 12, 89, 96, 111-21

Sanders, J. Oswald, 98

Sanders, John, 40, 44, 52-53, 67

Schaeffer, Francis, 125-26

Schlossberg, Herbert, 106

Schreiner, Thomas R., 66

Searle, Jon, 77

Shedd, W. G. T., 41, 70

Shramek, Dustin, 13, 89, 175-90

Shramek, Kellie, 176-77, 188

Shramek, Owen, 176-77, 188

Speirs, Carminha, 197

Stalin, Joseph, 19, 102-3

Stearns, Amy, 102

Stearns, Bill, 102

Steele, David N., 66

Stuart, Douglas, 45

Sutherlin, Grace, 191-92, 199, 203

Tada, Joni Eareckson, 13, 89, 191-204

Tada, Ken, 199, 203

Talbot, Mark, 12, 31-77, 89

Taylor, Justin, 11-14, 40, 70, 219-41

ten Boom, Corrie, 77, 239

Thomas, Curtis C., 66

Thompson, Phyllis, 105

Van Til, Cornelius, 136-37

von Schlegel, Katerina, 210

Ware, Bruce A., 66

Warren, Robin, 24

Watson, Gary, 49

Watts, Isaac, 24

Wells, David, 17

Wiesel, Elie, 31-35, 67, 71, 76

Wooding, Daniel, 223-24

Youderian, Barbara, 97, 114-17

Youderian, Roger, 96-97, 114-17

246 Person Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 246

Genesis

chap. 1 44

1:3 28

chaps. 2–3 44

2:16-17 123

chap. 3 25

3:12 124

3:14-19 26

3:15 125

3:16 124

4:7 124

6:5 44

8:21 58, 66

8:22 69

9:4-6 72

13:13 44

18:25 41, 60

chap. 19 45

31:7 46

chaps. 37–50 61-64, 227-28

42:21f. 67

44:16 67

45:3 67

45:5 67

46:34 178

50:3 178

50:10 178

50:15 44

50:15-17 67

50:20 44, 70, 85, 228

Exodus

2:11-14 134-35

3:18 135

4:11 25

6:9 149

chaps. 7–12 45

8:16-17 26

9:13-16 42

9:23-26 46

9:27f. 46

12:23 46

13:3 59

15:1-18 149

15:11 187

20:5 49

21:12-14 69

32:1-9 135

Leviticus

19:4 55

Numbers

14:18 49

21:6 45

23:23 209

Deuteronomy

6:22 46

18:21f. 52

19:4-6 69

24:16 49

30:19 54

31:6 171, 172

31:8 171, 172

32:4 41

32:8f. 59

32:35 72

32:39 22

Joshua

chap. 1 55

1:5 171

Scripture Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 247

24:14f. 54

Judges

9:23 45

1 Samuel

2:6 22

2:12-25 53

10:8 65

13:7-14 65

16:14-23 45

28:1-19 65

2 Samuel

16:5-11 69

chap. 24 45

24:1 46-47

1 Kings

8:38 166

22:1-38 69

22:13-40 45

2 Kings

14:1-6 49

17:23-25 46

19:28 69

21:12 45

24:2-4 45

1 Chronicles

10:1-14 65

10:4-14 69

21:1 46

21:12 112

28:20 171

Ezra

1:1-4 43

Job

book of 125

chap. 1 64

1:6-12 46

1:11-21 23-24

2:7 208

2:7-10 25

2:10 208

3:20-26 74-75

13:27 67

37:10-14 23-24

38-41 68

42:11 25, 208

Psalms

book of 145, 208

1:2-3 212

2:2-4 19-20

6:6f. 74

chap. 10 161, 169

10:17 195

14:1-3 58

16:10 46

16:11 108

18:6-19 193-94

20:7 209

chap. 22 186-87

22:1 74, 161

22:24 162

23:4 156, 168, 209

23:6 146

chap. 25 164

25:11-12 216

27:9-10 172

chap. 28 160-61, 208

28:1 152

30:5 13, 77, 175, 184

31:5 161, 162

32 164

32:8f. 56

33:10f. 68

33:10-11 20

33:15 70

34:19 179

chap. 38 164

38:17-21 172

40:1-3 226-27

45:7 61

48:14 97

50:21 69

chap. 51 164

51:5f. 58

52:3 61

55:22 46

56:1-6 76

56:5 76

56:8 76

248 Scripture Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 248

Scripture Index 249

56:9b-11 76

56:13 76

58:3 58

63:3 108

65:4 59

66:9 46

chap. 71 167

71:9 172

71:18 172

77:7-9 183

84:11 209

85:8 55

86:11 241

chap. 88 13, 180-83, 184

90:12 210

90:14 241

chap. 94 72

chap. 101 61

102:24 68

chap. 103 148

104:26 26

115:3 43

chap. 119 164

119:8 172

119:18 241

119:36 241

119:67 147

121:3 46

chap. 131 152

135:5-7 24

135:6 68

136:5 43

139:4 43, 44

139:4-6 70

139:5 67

139:13 67

139:16 67

145:7 68

145:17 68

148:7 24

Proverbs

1:29 54

1:31 54

3:7 55

3:13-15 31

3:18 31

3:31 54

4:14f. 55

4:20 55

4:22-24 55

4:26f. 55

10:28 152

14:10 166

15:3 68

16:1 43, 44

16:4 42

16:9 29

16:16 54

16:33 29, 71

19:21 29

21:1 19, 65

Ecclesiastes

7:2 210

7:14 42

Isaiah

3:9 57

3:11 49

6:3 187

9:11 46

10:5-7 69

10:6f. 51, 69

10:12-16 45-46

14:24 47

14:27 47

19:2 46

19:14 44-45

26:12 70

37:26 47

37:36 46

chap. 38 208

41:10 154

43:1-3 188

43:2 158, 163

45:7 44, 45

46:9-10 43

46:10 29, 43

46:10f. 43

46:10-11 52

46:9-10 43

53:3 135, 185, 214-15

53:5 25, 87, 88

56:4f. 54

58:6-8 140-41

64:6 125

63:14 68

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 249

250 Scripture Index

Jeremiah

22:3 136

22:15-16 136

25:30f. 58

31:3 73

31:30 49

Lamentations

3:23 239

3:25 17

3:32-33 86

3:37-38 29

Ezekiel

3:16-21 49, 55

18:19-32 55

18:32 68

33:11 55, 86

36:27 59

Daniel

2:20-21 19

4:17 19

4:27 136

4:34f 68

4:35 29, 43

10:13 20

11:32 212

Hosea

5:8 45

6:3 212

Joel

3:17-21 72

Amos

3:3-6 44-45

3:6 29, 44

Jonah

1–2 65

1:17 26

2:10 26

4:6 26

4:7 26

Micah

3:2 61

Habakkuk

chap. 3 208

Haggai

2:7 141

Matthew

4:3 26

5:11-12 94, 107

5:16 139, 140

6:19-24 61

6:34 239

7:9-10 25

7:12 237

7:23 229

8:29-32 20

8:31 20

10:1 20

10:29 43

13:11 202

17:12 71

18:6f. 49

19:23 102

20:1-16 95

22:39 237

25:41 20

26:38 185

27:4 52

27:46 155, 186

26:22-24 51-52

26:33-35 52

Mark

1:27 21

4:19 102

4:39 24

5:25-26 157

9:40 57

13:9 103

Luke

4:5-7 19

5:18 41

6:23 94

7:21 20

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 250

Scripture Index 251

7:30 53

9:23 196, 240

9:25 215

10:41f. 54-55

11:14-28 61

12:32 153

12:48 199, 202

13:16 24

17:10 151

19:17-19 94

21:12-13 103, 106, 216

22:3 21

22:3-4 26

22:31 21, 46

22:31-32 27

22:44 185

22:52-53 21

23:34 155

23:43 155

23:46 155, 162

John

1:13 59

2:8 41

3:1-8 58, 59

6:44 59

6:63 59

6:64 52

6:65 59

8:34 57

8:36 57

8:44 22, 57

chap. 9 112, 231

9:3 42

10:18 22

11:33 135

11:45-50 51

11:51-53 51

12:24 98

12:31 19

12:35f. 55

12:46 58

14:30 19

chaps. 15–17 215

15:5 70

16:11 19

17:12 52

18:14 51

18:28–19:16 51

18:36 139

19:11 71

19:26-28 155

19:30 155

Acts

1:8 101

1:16 26

1:18 52

chap. 2 53

2:22-23 50-51, 117

2:23 26, 43, 66, 71

2:28 196

2:37-38a 51

3:14f. 66

4:24-28 52-53

4:27 71

4:28 43, 71

5:41 107

6:10 102

8:1 101, 102

10:38 24

11:19 101

13:14-48 128

13:48 59

14:15-17 55

14:16 46

15:17f. 68

16:14 59

17:25-28 68

17:30 44

18:24–19:20 42

21–22 129

26:18 55-56, 58

27:13-44 64-65

Romans

1:16 27

1:18-2:16 61

1:18-3:20 49

1:19-22 231

2:7 94

3:8 235

3:9-20 58

chap. 5 113

5:1-5 209

5:2 107, 198, 204

5:3 194, 198

5:3-4 92, 107, 198

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 251

5:9 27

5:12 58, 66

5:19 58, 87

chap. 6 60

chaps. 6–8 164

6:16-19 56

6:17 58

6:23 170

7:5 58

chap. 8 145

8:1 209

8:1-14 58

8:2-8 60

8:5 57

8:7 57

8:8 57

8:16 229

8:18 93, 200, 203

8:18-39 209

8:20 232, 237

8:20-23 86

8:21 237

8:21-23 26

8:28 25, 31, 72

8:29-30 73

8:31 29

8:31-39 73

8:35-37 29

8:38-39 75

8:39 199

chap. 9 221

9:15 71

9:18 71

10:14-17 59

11:32f. 69

11:33 71

12:17 147

12:19 72

12:20 237

15:4 184

1 Corinthians

1:18 28

1:23 28

2:7 47

2:9 159

3:21 199

3:23 199

4:13 95

10:12 239

10:13 46

12:22 95

12:26 177

chap. 15 211

15:41 94

15:55-57 88

2 Corinthians

1:4 166

1:5-6 98

1:8 75, 193

1:8-9 92

1:8-11 75

1:9 106, 194, 209-10

1:20 156

2:14-15 198

3:17 57

3:18 239

4:4 19, 27, 58

4:6 28

4:7-12 195

4:17 13, 108, 175

4:17-18 93

5:8 214

5:18-21 66

6:10 199

6:14 58, 61

6:14f. 58

9:6 94

11:23 175

11:23-29 75

11:24-28 176

12:7 113

12:7-9 25

12:9 195

12:9-10 106, 107

Galatians

3:2 59

3:13 87, 209

4:5 84

5:1 55

5:13 55, 60

5:16-25 55

6:7 49, 67

6:10 237

252 Scripture Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 252

Ephesians

chap. 1 84

1:1 44

1:5 59-60

1:7-10 47

1:11 50, 52, 53, 59, 66,

71

1:11-13 42-44

2:1-3 56, 57, 61, 66

2:1-10 58, 59

2:2 19, 58

2:3 60

2:3f. 58

2:5 28

2:8-10 59

2:10 55

3:20 159

5:3-21 55

5:6 60

5:8 58

5:17-19 57

6:12 19

Philippians

1:14 96

1:21 211

2:7-8 87

2:9-11 44

2:13 70

2:20 214

2:26 213

2:27 214

2:27-30 176

3:7-8 108

3:8 211, 241

4:4 214

4:7 214

4:13 195

4:19 217

Colossians

1:4-5 92

1:13 58

1:17 66

1:24 98, 100, 198

2:7 58

2:13 56

2:13-15 59

2:14-15 88

3:5-10 60

1 Thessalonians

1:4f. 59

1:5-6 98

2:12 55

3:5 26

4:1-7 55

4:13 214

2 Thessalonians

2:11f. 45

2:13 59

1 Timothy

2:4 66

4:3 108

2 Timothy

1:9 83, 208

1:10 171

1:12 171

2:3 194, 198

2:10 98

2:19 150

2:24-26 28

3:5 56

4:10 176

4:13 41

4:16 176

Titus

1:15f. 58

2:13 204

3:9 56

Philemon

v. 6 72

Hebrews

1:3 41, 50, 52, 53, 66,

71

chaps. 1–8 41

2:1-3 55

2:14 170

2:14-15 88

3:12-13 240

4:11 55

Scripture Index 253

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 253

4:15 91, 186

4:16 186

5:7 161, 185

5:8 91, 147

6:17 71

10:34 107-8

11:8-10 139-40

11:13 140

11:16 140

11:25 108

12:2 195, 215

12:3-11 42

12:10 91

12:23 235

12:25 55

13:3 224

13:5 179

James

1:2 108, 146, 208

1:2-4 42, 113, 200

1:2-5 209

1:13 41, 71

1:17 71

1:18 59

2:1-4 137

2:19 20

3:15 57

4:6-8 196

4:13-16 22

4:15 236

5:11 24

1 Peter

book of 145

1:3-9 209

1:6-9 163

1:7 109

1:13 109

1:15 194

1:17 140

1:21 109

2:9 58

2:11 140

2:16 60

2:21 112, 194

2:24 87

3:15 109

3:17 21

3:18 88-89

4:1 198

4:12 189, 198

4:13 108, 109

4:19 109, 160, 162

5:8 25

5:8-9 21

2 Peter

1:3f. 57

chap. 2 44

2:18 57

2:19 56

3:9 66

1 John

1:5 71

1:5f. 58

1:5-7 55

2:15-17 57

2:16 57, 69

3:7-10 57

5:19 58

5:19f. 170

Jude

v. 4 44

v. 8 44

v. 10 57

vv. 12f. 57

vv. 13-15 44

Revelation

2:10 22

5:9-10 115

5:9-12 84-85

7:9-10 141

7:17 88

12:9 25

13:8 82-83

15:3 85

20:10 27

21:4 159, 184, 190

21:23 190

22:5 190

254 Scripture Index

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 254

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 255

SufferingSoverGod.48096.i04.qxd 9/21/07 9:22 AM Page 256

Related Media
See more
Related Sermons
See more